daylight in the swanp
Selwyn Dewdney, 1965
daylight in the swamp Memoirs of Selwyn Dewdney
Edited byA.K. Dewdney
...
93 downloads
917 Views
14MB Size
Report
This content was uploaded by our users and we assume good faith they have the permission to share this book. If you own the copyright to this book and it is wrongfully on our website, we offer a simple DMCA procedure to remove your content from our site. Start by pressing the button below!
Report copyright / DMCA form
daylight in the swanp
Selwyn Dewdney, 1965
daylight in the swamp Memoirs of Selwyn Dewdney
Edited byA.K. Dewdney
DUNDURN PRESS Toronto • Oxford
Copyright © Selwyn Dewdney 1997 All rights reserved. No part of this publication may be reproduced, stored in a retrieval system, or transmitted in any form or by any means, electronic, mechanical, photocopying, recording, or otherwise (except for brief passages for purposes of review) without the prior permission of Dundurn Press Limited. Permission to photocopy should be requested from the Canadian Reprography Collective. Editor: Doris Cowan Manuscript Preparation: Nigel Wood Designer: Scott Reid Printer: Transcontinental Printing Inc.
Canadian Cataloguing in Publication Data Dewdney, Selwyn, 1909-1979 Daylight in the swamp: memoirs of Selwyn Dewdney Includes bibliographical references. ISBN 1-55002-251-2 1. Dewdney, Selwyn, 1909-1979. 2. Canada, Northern, in art. 3. Artists - Canada - Biography. I. Dewdney, Keewatin. II. Title. N6549.D48A2 1997
760'. 092
C97-930772-4
We acknowledge the support of the Canada Council for the Arts for our publishing program. We also acknowledge the support of the Ontario Arts Council and the Book Publishing Industry Development Program of the Department of Canadian Heritage.
Care has been taken to trace the ownership of copyright material used in this book. The author and the publisher welcome any information enabling them to rectify any references or credit in subsequent editions. Printed and bound in Canada.
Printed on recycled paper.
1
2
3
4
5
Dundurn Press 8 Market Street Suite 200 Toronto, Ontario, Canada M5E 1M6
01
00
99
98
97
Dundurn Press 73 Lime Walk Headington, Oxford England OX3 7AD
Dundurn Press 250 Sonwil Drive Buffalo, NY U.S.A. 14225
Contents
contents
List o f F i g u r e s . . .
6
List o f P l a t e s . . .
8
Preface ...
9
1. F i r s t Love ...
11
2. A Few A c r e s of Snow ...
21
3. Bush Apprenticeship ...
31
4. H i s t o r y is Now ...
45
5. On the Edge of A n o t h e r World ...
59
6.LacSeulSagas...
71
7. The Canoe ...
81
8. Up S h e t l a n d C r e e k . . .
89
9. Bush H o n e y m o o n
107
. . .
10. Men and Boys in the M o u n t a i n s . . .
121
11. P a c k i n g on the Pic . . .
135
12. Boys in the B u s h ...
145
13. Red O c h r e ...
157
14. Island Quest
...
171
A p p e n d i x : R a d i o M e m o i r s of C a n o n S a n d e r s o n . . .
185
Selected P u b l i c a t i o n s of Selwyn D e w d n e y . . .
191
Figures (Where no date is given, precise dating has not been possible)
figures
1. Selwyn Dewdney, 1965 2. Alfred Daniel Alexander Dewdney, Bishop of Keewatin 3. Alice Dewdney, Selwyn's mother, relaxes on the beach at Sand Lake 4. (a & b) Two views of Kenora, 1925 5. Rocky shore of Tunnel Island, pencil sketch 6. Locomotive, pencil sketch 7. Aerial photograph of Norway House, 1928 8. Two men ponder map, pencil sketch 9. Forest Friends Feasting (on my arm!), pencil sketch 10. Character studies, pencil sketches 11. Untitled study of lake, pencil sketch 12. Untitled, pencil sketch 13. Untitled, pen and ink 14. Trapper's cabin, pencil sketch 15. Hunter, pencil sketch, 1938 16. Studies of canoes, pencil sketches 17. Waves on lake, pencil sketch 18. Trapper's cabin, pencil sketch, 1935 19. Buildings at Mattice, pencil sketch, 1935 20. Porquis Junction, pencil sketch, 1935 21. Porquis Junction, pencil sketch, 1935 22. Sunday, pencil sketch, 1935 23. The Kid—Camp Helper, pencil sketch, 1935 24. Bush landscape, pencil sketch, 1935 25. Trapper's cabin, pencil sketch, 1935 26. Survey camp, pencil sketch, 1935 27. Bill Goudge, Axeman, pencil sketch, 1935 28. Three Pre Cambrians, pencil sketch, 1935 29. Dave, pencil sketch, 1935 30. Dave, pencil sketch, 1935 31. Mark Lonergan, pencil sketch, 1935 32. Map showing part of canoe trip made by Selwyn and Irene Dewdney, 1937 33. Christmas card made by Selwyn Dewdney, pen and ink, 1937
figures
34. Blindfold Lake, pencil sketch, 1937 35. Rapids on the Wabigoon River, pencil sketch, 1937 36. Irene whittling, pencil sketch, 1937 37. Newspaper report of Selwyn and Irene Dewdney's canoe trip from Kenora to Red Lake and back, in Kenora Miner & News, Friday, August 20,1937 38. Christmas card made by Selwyn Dewdney, pen and ink, 1938 39. Cabins on Finlay River, pencil sketch, 1938 40. Finlay Forks, pencil sketch, 1938 41. Hal Davison, pencil sketch, 1938 42. Hugh Gallie, pencil sketch, 1938 43. Mountain pack horse, Jake, pencil sketch, 1938 44. Sekani Woman—Fort MacLeod, pencil sketch, 1938 45. Little Canada, pencil sketch, 1938 46. From Mica Mountain, pencil sketch, 1938 47. From Mica Mountain, pencil sketch, 1938 48. Christmas card made by Selwyn Dewdney, pen and ink 49. "Eric" (after a heavy meal), pencil sketch, 1943 50. Church at Nicholson, pencil sketch, 1946 51. Old barn—Nicholson, pencil sketch, 1946 52. Selwyn Dewdney, March, 1946 53. Christmas card made by Selwyn Dewdney, ink on paper, 1957 54. Selwyn Dewdney and son Christopher with VW minibus during a pictographic expedition 55. Pictograph of naturalistic beings 56. Pictograph of supernatural beings 57. Pictograph—Fairy Point, Face IX 58. Pictograph—Fairy Point, Face VIII 59. Christmas card made by Selwyn Dewdneypen and ink, 1942 60. Missinaibie, pencil sketch, 1942 61. Boat Channel Island, pencil sketch, 1977 62. Little Loon Island, from Peter's Point, pencil sketch, 1978 63. From the bronze plaque at Agawa commemorating Selwyn Dewdney's contribution to the study of aboriginal rock paintings.
Plates
plates
1. N a m a C r e e k F a l l s , 1945 2. B i l l R o b i n s o n , 1933 3. G u l l L a k e , 1940 4 . W h i t e f i s h F a l l s — s k e t c h , 1943 5. R a c k e t y F a l l s , 1942 6. W a b u s k a n e L a k e , 1941 7. R o c k , W a t e r & Tree, 1949 8. G u l l Lake P o i n t , 1942 9. B u s h C a m p , c. 1935 10. Lac Seul C h u r c h , 1953 11. W a b u s k a n e Lake S t u d y , 1957 12. Bill G o u d g e , 1945 13. S t a n d i n g A n t e l o p e , 1965 14. R a c k e t y F a l l s , c. 1943 15. P r e c a m b r i a n S h o r e , 1953 16. W i n d y S h o r e , G u l l L a k e , c. 1950
^"^elwyn Dewdney died on November 18, 1979, following openf*
preface
^ heart surgery to correct a faulty artificial valve. His death
V^_*/
marked the biblically allotted "three score and ten" years of
human life, a seventy-year period that he used well. In his boyhood in Prince Albert, Saskatchewan, his teen years in Kenora, Ontario, and his adult life in Owen Sound and London, Ontario, Selwyn Dewdney followed three paths: art, education, and the bush. Art replaced an earlier call that he thought he heard as a boy. His father was an Anglican minister who, as Selwyn entered his teens, became the bishop of Keewatin. Selwyn's oldest brother, Alec, was also a minister. At the age of sixteen, Selwyn accompanied the bishop on a gruelling eight hundred mile trek through the northern Ontario bush to visit far-flung native communities. From that moment on, the bush called him with increasing urgency. For a time his newfound love of the Canadian wilderness, would masquerade as missionary zeal, but that youthful illusion did not last long. Even when the call of art replaced that of religion, painting itself would take on a secondary role, becoming an excuse to set out into the bush with his beloved canoe. During his highschool teaching years, Selwyn stretched his salary to the breaking point in order to finance his wilderness excursions. At first he travelled alone but later he took his wife, Irene, and, at one time or another, all four of his sons, Donner, Keewatin, Peter, and Christopher. In the handful of years that remained to him before the fateful second operation, Selwyn worked on these memoirs. He assembled passages from his bush diary, field notes, and letters home. He wrote (and rewrote) from memory, pounding away on his trusty Underwood portable typewriter at odd moments. He worked at home in London, Ontario, and at his island cabin on Lake Windermere. He pasted scraps of paper listing new ideas onto the margins of old material. At the time
9
of his death he left a manuscript that was partial at best.
my promise, as such. With the advent of inexpensive
The strange thing was that while his family was certainly
word-processing, Daylight in the Swamp suddenly looked
aware of the memoirs project, we all forgot it when he
easier. I started in. Selwyn's prose resembled the northern
died. Perhaps it was the shock of his death.
bush. Here were fine, open glades of memory but here
The night following his funeral, I lay in bed trying not
also were swamps of badly organized prose, miles of
to think about anything, hoping that sleep would soon
passive voice, streams of run-on sentences, thought-bite
bring relief. Suddenly, I felt someone standing beside the
deadfalls, sermonizing, and a general lack of continuity
bed, a presence. I squinted into the half light of the
that only a word-processor, with its ability to move whole
hallway creeping through a doorcrack. Nothing. No one.
blocks of prose instantly, could remedy.
The presence was a feeling, an awful feeling. And it was
It is done now. I have preserved his voice, I think, and
him! As a scientist, I could hardly believe in ghosts, but
sustained the stories and sketches that true lovers of the
what else could you call this presence? It was Selwyn and
North will cherish. From the title (the last line of a highly
something was wrong, something I was supposed to set
questionable bush-poem) to the final section on native
right. But what? "Okay", I said into the darkness. "Okay. I
pictographs, readers will hear a new and authentic voice
understand." Abruptly the feeling ceased.
of history, of native people, of a land undergoing
But it began again the very next morning, not the presence, but the urgency. When time permitted, I visited
irretrievable change. Some daylight, at last, has entered the manuscript.
the house where he and my mother had lived for twentyfive years. I walked from room to room without the
Keewatin Dewdney
slightest clue of what, if anything, I was looking for. And I
1997
felt a bit foolish, to boot. I went into his study and stared dully at the typewriter, the azalea plant, the rows of books, the light in the garden. Then it caught my eye, beside the typewriter. The manuscript was plainly marked Daylight in the Swamp. As soon as I picked it up, the feeling of dread and urgency ceased abruptly. I kept the manuscript for many years before starting to work on it. Some chapters were fairly straightforward, others were a mess. I dreaded the doing but remembered 10
v chapter one
F i r s t
Love
She's a little honey. She's lying behind me right now—
If my love affair with the Algonkian canoe and our
I've only to turn to see her trim little figure on the sand. We
search for an island home amount to leitmotifs in these
were made for each other...
memoirs, larger themes are also present. I wonder if,
From a letter to Irene Dewdney, July 10, 1942
looking back on such a varied and confusing life, I shall find a unifying element, a deeper unconscious direction
The quote above refers to Olga, my canoe. She was not
that I have followed unwittingly. Perhaps C.P. Snow is
the first canoe I had paddled, to be sure, nor the first I
correct when he says that " . . . in your deepest relations,
had fallen in love with, but she was the first canoe that I
there is only one test of what you profoundly want: It
had paid for in hard pre-inflation Canadian dollars. And
consists of what happens to you."
she has always held a special place in my memory as the
One thing is clear. From childhood I have had an urge
only canoe I have known that perished by accidental
to wander the Canadian hinterland, to extend the dreams
cremation.
and desires of a boy born on the edge of Saskatchewan's
Even Olga's name had a special significance for me
boreal forest. It seems reasonable, therefore, in trying to
and Irene. It was to have been the name of the daughter
sort out the confusion of that life, to hope that an
Irene hoped to have. But after the birth of four sons, she
exploration of my bush experiences will shed some
reluctantly gave up that dream. Another dream we shared
daylight on the swamp of my memories. Inseparably, an
remained nothing more than a dream for decades: The
account of my first love, the Algonkian canoe, will
discovery of an island home in God's country, the
emerge.
Canadian North.
Going back to the little lake, scarcely more than a 11
Daylight in the Swamp slough and a mere fifteen miles
back all the way down for another
north of Prince Albert, I return to
run at it if the first attempt failed.
the place our family spent its
Or we would just get stuck in the
summers for three incredible years.
sand.
Incredible, that is, in my memory.
We always had at least one flat
Of the dozens of Sand Lakes and
tire en route. This meant taking out
Sandy Lakes scattered
across
the inner tube of the afflicted tire,
Canada, this Sand Lake must have
patching it, getting it all on the rim
been the smallest. I revisited it in
again, then pumping it up by hand.
1965 to find that, whatever it was
There was no spare wheel, so
then, it is now neither sandy nor a
carrying an extra tire and inner
lake. Just another Saskatchewan
tube saved no time. At a corner
slough, shrunk to a pitiful relic of
called Spruce Home, we would turn
the lake I knew. Swamp grasses had
off the main road, drive through a
overgrown the sand.
series of farms (opening and closing gates), bumping over bare
I'm not certain of the date of
roots
our first summer there, but it must have been before the flu epidemic
Figure 2. Alfred Daniel Alexander Dewdney, Bishop of Keewatin
of 1919, in which my brother
and getting stuck in
mudholes. Finally, we reached an open
Robert died. I still have the snapshot of the whole
stretch of cleared land, a sandy double track from
"ladder" of six boys. Baby John was at the bottom, then
Galbraith's to Balfour's farm; from there to the lake it was
Harold, Robert, myself, Albert, and Alex, the eldest, at
a mere fifty yards. Dad and Alex had built the floor and
the top.
frames for what we called the Big Tent and the Little Tent,
Dad had bought a "tin Lizzie" a year or two earlier
their corners nearly touching. The little tent held bunks
and, although I may be exaggerating, I recall that the
for the four older boys. The two youngest slept in the big
fifteen mile trip out to Sand Lake took most of the day.
tent with Mother, as did Dad when he got away from his
There were the sand hills. After you crossed the North
clerical duties. As Archdeacon of Prince Albert, he
Saskatchewan river, even in low gear, with everyone but
frequently visited prairie parishes, implementing plans he
the driver walking, we would have trouble. We would
had drawn up for their new churches. Immigration was at 11
Daylight in the Swamp but symbiosis was even better. For a nine-year old boy she was a large craft, but long and heavy enough to tolerate my sixty pounds in the stern without becoming at all unstable. In fact, I was just heavy enough to lift the bow slightly out of the water. This made it eminently manoeuverable in the evening calm. But I learned soon enough to move amidships when there was a wind. I was totally untaught. My two older brothers had no more canoe experience than I and Figure 3. Alice Dewdney, S e l w y n ' s mother, relaxes on the beach at Sand Lake
although I can recall going out in the canoe with Albert, I
a high level, mainly from central Europe but substantially
that I had access to the canoe almost whenever I
from Great Britain, too.
wanted it.
can't remember his being as enthusiastic as I was. It seems
There was then a surprising amount of beach along
The evening calm was my favourite time. If I needed
the south side of the lake: a wide area of dry sand and a
any evidence that the water was not good to drink, I had
firm, sandy bottom as far out as we could wade. Much of
only to watch the lines of creamy foam along the shore
the shore was interspersed with reeds, the round, tapering
where the waves beat on a windy day. As the water
type that grow in a few feet of water and bend gracefully
subsided in the evening, the foam began to detach itself
in the wind.
from the shore in long lines at first, then breaking up
The lake was essentially swamp water, and mother
into smaller units and irregular formations. How
used it only for washing. We boys took turns going to
fascinating it was to manoeuvre the canoe in and out
Balfour's well to bring back ice-cold drinking water in
among these little islands, imagining them as icebergs
bright tin pails. My daily chore was to clean out the
whose slightest touch would bring doom. Or I would be
porridge pot, which I did with dispatch by the little two-
a cavalry officer smashing irresistibly through an
plank dock, anticipating a free day after that. So it was up
unbroken line of foam, swinging around to attack from
to the big tent with the clean pot, then a joyous dash
the rear. Although it was all to no conscious purpose, I
down to the beach to greet our elegant sixteen-foot
was learning to control my craft.
Peterborough-type pleasure canoe,
my first true love.
But my techniques were the crudest. All I knew was
Even then I understood that romance was wonderful,
that you could turn either by hard paddling on one side
13
• Daylight in the Swamp • or by dragging the paddle on the other side. Alternatively,
was alone, exhilaratingly alone in the forest hush, staring
by building up speed, paddling on alternate sides to keep
and staring upward as if that great tree had a message for
on a straight line, I could use my paddle like a rudder to
me alone.
swerve in one direction or the other. Inevitably, I got
Family berry-picking excursions acquainted us with
quite skillful in spite of these limitations. Even later in life
much of the lake. We might work our way out of the
I got quite a bang out of paddling along a high rock face
northwest corner of the lake into a series of sloughs. We
at a lively speed, so controlling the craft that the
named them the Greater and Lesser Shallow Lakes. Here,
gunwhale would touch the rock with just a whisper. Back
my elder brothers took precedence as canoemen but I
on Sand Lake there were no cliffs or rocks of any
held my peace, knowing that after supper she would be
description, just the foam and long reeds. When there was
mine alone.
no foam to charge, I would come at the reeds that arched gracefully out of the water along the shore.
On the east shore of the lake there was a rookery among the tall, white poplars. From here issued some of
Sand Lake was not always calm. There were days when
the strangest croaks and caws as adult crows gave gawky
a wild wind blew out of the northwest and waves crashed
young their first vocal lessons. It was a good place for
menacingly along the beaches. Then I would become a
high bush cranberries, but the flies were fierce when the
Viking, launching my longboat with a berserk burst of
berries were ripe. Dad, who, among other things, was a
strength, leaping aboard as she mounted the first great
great tinsmith, fashioned tin cans into berry cups that we
breakers, then standing amidships to stroke out to sea
boys could clip to our belts, bringing them full to pour
with quick, powerful thrusts of my paddle.
into a five-quart pail. There were no blueberries at Sand
There were explorations along the shore, as well. One
Lake, but there were Saskatoon berries in abundance.
day I paddled across to the north shore of the little lake,
Those who rave about blueberry pie have never tasted
pulled the canoe up into the brush, and entered the dense
Saskatoon berry pie. Fresh picked, this pear-shaped
spruce forest that bordered the lake across from our
purple fruit is larger and seedier than your average
camp. I remember the silence and the feeling that this
blueberry, but just as juicy. Preserved, it has a unique
forest would go on and on northwards, without end. I
flavour that no other berry can match and that I couldn't
went deeper and deeper into the forest, not knowing what
begin to describe.
I was seeking, until I came to a great tree, probably a
In the northeast corner of Sand Lake, it seemed so
white spruce. I looked upward in awe to where its trunk
shallow that you doubted the canoe would float until you
faded into the lower grey screen of outlived branches. I
dipped your paddle toward the dark bottom to feel 14
Daylight in the Swamp
a&bKenora,
1925
nothing. Bubbles that came up from the stew of black and
Kenora became our new home. In the winter of 1921,
rotting vegetation stank of sulphur dioxide and other
on the last leg of the journey from Winnipeg across the
noxious vapours, earning the bay its name: Devil's
flats of Manitoba, our train entered a strange land.
Perfume Bay. Only years later did I learn the correct
Although the snow made it familiar enough to the eye, we
technical term for the odoriferous muck: loon shit.
passed through rock cuts where walls of solid granite
The west shore of the lake opened onto the pasture
towered higher than I could see, even craning my neck at
land that Balfour's small herd of milch cows grazed all
the window. The house that came with Dad's new job as
night. Only once, in Ontario's Haliburton County, have I
the Anglican Bishop of the diocese of Keewatin was high
ever heard again the nostalgic combination that lulled me to sleep night after night at Sand Lake: the soft clang of distant cowbells and the distant fluting of the loons. One seemingly trivial experience at Sand Lake left an indelible mark on my memory. One windy day I landed the canoe at a spot on the south shore that I had never visited before, the only place where waves had washed out a bank of gravel scarcely a foot high. Embedded in the bank was a large stone that I pried out and stared at with awe. There are not many rocks on the Prairies, and to my inexperienced eye it was enormous, bigger than a man's fist! How was it possible for a rock to be that big? 15
Figure 5. Rocky shore of Tunnel Island"
• Daylight in the Swamp • on the rocky shore of Tunnel Island, across the bay from
appearance of ease, their paddles slipping so silently and
the town of Kenora. When spring came, there was rock
smoothly, with such effortless ease, that I realized they
everywhere.
could keep up the stroke all day without tiring. I tried to
The only way the builders could provide a lawn for the
master the art of squatting as low as they did, realizing
house was to put up a stone retaining wall six to eight feet
that this was the way to stabilize the canoe when it had no
high, bringing in earth to fill it. Instead of blasting out a
load for ballast. I had learned to kneel for short periods of
basement, they made one on the ground floor and built
time in choppy water, but ten minutes of sitting on my
the living floor of the house some ten feet above ground
calves was too much. It took another ten minutes to
level. There was a hospital on Tunnel Island just north of
straighten my knees when I stood up!
our house on even higher rock. A bridge connected the
I had also noticed that the man never seemed to drag
island to the mainland and in winter, when people from
his paddle to keep the canoe on course, as if he didn't need
the town wanted to visit the hospital, they would take the
to steer. But I hadn't watched his paddle stroke closely
short cut across our property. Naturally, we did too.
enough to discover how he did it. I didn't learn how to
During our first summer in Kenora I was in the family canoe morning, noon or night, whenever it became
achieve this effect until the following summer. Hector Angus, the local piano tuner, taught me how.
available. Sometimes I would use an errand to town as my
While his wife was in the Tunnel Island hospital, he
excuse. I can't recall whether we brought the Sand Lake
would visit by canoe. I noticed him pulling up to the
canoe with us or acquired another. I only remember that it
hospital boathouse on several occasions. He paddled a
was the same model of cedar-strip Peterborough canoe
fourteen foot canoe, smaller than ours, but he sat
and that someone had painted it blue.
amidships and handled the craft with the skill and ease
I was in it whenever we were both free. With no foam
of a master. From him I discovered the Ojibway steering
to chase or reeds to dodge, I concentrated on making
twist. Until that time, when I wanted to keep the canoe
perfect landings at the boathouse dock and got quite
from swinging, I would turn the blade out at each
good at it. But I was still using my self-taught techniques
power stroke so it acted like a rudder. Angus turned the
of Sand Lake.
blade in at each power stroke just as he lifted the paddle
Twice during the early days in Kenora I was
out of the water on the return stroke. I tried it and it
confronted with the fact that I was a novice. Once, a man,
worked. But I was awkward because I had to fight my
a woman, and two children glided past our boathouse in
former practice,
a birchbark canoe. They sat on their calves with every
A year or two later, when Angus came over to tune our
16
• Daylight in the Swamp • piano, I had a chance to talk to him. He was morose and
wave, entering the water for the next stroke without a
somewhat laconic until I asked him about canoeing.
ripple. Over the years I have developed my own style, but
Then he came alive. What stuck in my mind, apart from
no matter how good I may have seemed to myself, I have
the glow of his eyes on that occasion, was his engaging
always reminded myself that Hector Angus did it better.
description of traveling at night. In a calm that lasted
After that first glimpse of the Ojibway family, it was
from evening through the night, you could make better
years before I saw another birchbark canoe. Most of the
time, he said at one point. But I suspect, after travelling at
Lake of the Woods Ojibway paddled "store-bought"
night myself in later years, that it was not merely the
canoes. Carefully noting their stroke, I noticed, too, how
efficiency that attracted him, but the night echoes of
they invariably paddled close to the shore, even though it
loons and owls, the stars above, and the dark, mysterious
took them out of their way. This was partly a precaution,
shores, silhouetted against the night sky. And the long
for in those days few learned to swim. But I think, too,
silences when all you heard was the drip of water from
that it was a traditional practice: if you sighted game
your lifted paddle.
close to the shore, you had a chance of landing in time to
It may have been Angus, too, who taught me that you can tell a novice by how he bends his elbow when he
hunt it down. Seeing you in the middle of the lake, no animal would wait around for you to paddle over.
brings the paddle out of the water for the return stroke.
Of all the Ojibway families that I saw paddling, I can't
An expert relaxes the lower arm while the paddle swings
ever recall seeing the man paddle bow while the wife
wide, almost of its own volition. Angus always paddled
paddled stern but this was, apparently, the earlier
alone. Stories around town suggested that he was not the
traditional pattern. Many years later I ran across the
ideal father or husband, sometimes disappearing for
reproduction of a birchbark drawing in a book by
weeks on end.
Schoolcraft.* It showed a family in a canoe, members
I'll never forget the sight of Angus in a canoe: lean,
identified by their totems. The bear in the bow
alert, his paddle flashing in a tireless rhythm, bending
represented the father. Four little bears, graduated in size,
forward with each stroke for maximum leverage in the
represented the children. The figure in the stern, a carp,
water. His paddle would leap out of the water at the end
was the mother.
of his power stroke, then skim the water, sweeping wide.
In the world of athletic endeavour of the 1920s,
He would feather it for minimum resistance to wind or
Kenora, despite its small size, could hold up its head * Henry Rowe Schoolcraft was a nineteenth century American chronicler of native culture.
17
Daylight in the Swamp among much larger cities. Besides winning the World
Centennial canoe races on television, I was appalled to see
Hockey Championship, Kenora also hosted an
the team from the Northwest Territories using the kids'
international regatta every summer. Athletes from
camp style. They spent more energy shifting from one
Duluth, Winnipeg, Detroit, Port Arthur, and other places
side of the canoe to the other than they could possibly
came to compete in eights, fours, doubles, and singles
have gained by changing. It was particularly painful to
rowing events, as well as inboard motor boat races and
watch how these and other competitors would lift their
two canoe events. In the summer of 1926,1 got to know
paddles high on the return stroke, revealing their lack of
Max Lachapelle, a Canadien in origin, although he spoke
paddling experience. Most of them had probably grown
little French. But in build and the bold cut of his jib he
up in square stern canoes with a kicker* in the back.
was the image of the coureurs de bois who opened up the
Every day Max and I practised two strokes on our
continent. Max was a bit lighter than I was, an ideal
favoured sides: a strong, steady, mile-eating stroke and a
weight to paddle the bow. In addition he had a powerful,
short, spurting stroke. In the sprint we would put
compact body and a gutsy, fighting spirit, the kind that
everything we had into each stroke just as we reached the
would collapse from exhaustion before admitting defeat.
angle of maximum leverage, flipping the paddle forward
We watched the regatta together that summer, deciding in
to dip, just before it reached the critical angle.
our youthful arrogance that we could have given the
When the big day came, we found ourselves lined up
winner of the doubles canoe event, full grown adults, a
at the starting point with men who were anywhere from
run for their money.
half as old again to twice our age. Two husky-looking
The following spring, as soon as the ice was out, we
lumberjacks from Keewatin looked extremely formidable
began to train for the canoe doubles race. The length of
and the word was around that they'd win in a breeze. The
the course, about a half mile, was too long to finish in a
starting gun cracked and the canoes leapt forward. All the
prolonged spurt and too short to gain anything by
way down the course, the two lumberjacks inched ahead,
switching our paddling sides, something we might do
widening their lead in ominous fashion. They led by a full
once in a half-mile stretch, in any event. We eschewed
length as they neared the finish line when Max and I
what I called the "kids' camp" style, where the paddler
turned on our sprinting style. In seconds we were level,
switches sides every few strokes. Years later, watching the
then we crept ahead. In the lead, we could crowd them
* Early bush slang for a small outboard motor.
18
Daylight in the Swamp toward the boom logs that edged the course, leaving us easy winners in the last stretch. Max and I each got a gold medal. My love for the canoe was only the outward and visible sign of a commitment that went deeper, a commitment to the untamed land itself. And although the canoe meant that my bush experience would be confined to the warm weather months, my winter sojourns in Prince Albert and Kenora exposed me to the cooler seasons and gave me, in the end, a year-round perspective on the North.
19
This page intentionally left blank
chapter two
A Few Acres of Snow
Mon pays, ce nest pas un pays, cest Vhiver...
I was born in happier times. Incredible as it may sound to a city-dweller, winter was fun! You can see it in
Gilles Vigneault, the song Mon Pays
KrieghofPs paintings, in prints, and in illustrations from What a big fuss over a little thing. It's like the war with
the nineteenth and early twentieth centuries: horseracing on the frozen St. Lawrence river, family visits by
the English which started over a few acres of snow.
sleigh, snowshoe and toboggan.
Voltaire, [undated letter]
Winters in London, Ontario, have depressed me as much as anyone else, but for different reasons. I
Gilles Vigneault, who came from the village of Gaspe
remember.
with the bush at his back door and the Canadien heritage in his blood, channelled into song the deep feelings of
Wearing heavy underwear, my feet in three pairs of
identity that once pervaded the English, as well as the
socks within moose-skin moccasins. Wearing a mackinaw
French-speaking people of this land. Voltaire, on the
coat and a woollen toque, whether in Prince Albert or
other hand, expresses perfectly the prevailing urban
Kenora. The snow creaking crisply underfoot, the sun
attitude toward winter. Canadian city-dwellers,
sparkling on the snow, making me sneeze when I emerged
surrounded by the comforts, conveniences and the deadly
from the house, school-bound on a winter morning.
boredom created by technology, have been selling their
Winter parties, indoors and outdoors. And Christmas!
winter birthright for trips to warmer climes. To them
Who could complain? Skating, skiing, tobogganing,
snow is the nasty, messy, slippery stuff that snarls traffic
snowshoeing, sliding, snowballing the girls when it thawed.
and covers the sidewalks with salty slush.
Could summer offer such delights and in such variety? 21
• Daylight in the Swamp • True, I have idealized some memories and repressed
expanse a mile or two above a future Calgary or
others. Winter was also the time for epidemics of Spanish
Montreal! Surveying the endless fields of ice and snow
flu and diphtheria, a time when pneumonia killed off the
that blanketed the whole land, we'd learn that Canada
very old and the very young, including my younger
was born under snow and ice. We would understand the
brother, Robert. For native people winter survival could
profound truth of Vigneault's phrase: "Mon pays, c'est
be as critical as it was for homesteading families who
Fhiver." These vast glacial bulldozers once ground their
endured long months of frozen isolation.
way well into the northern United States. They bared the
I'll never forget the incredible spectacle of rain in December when I first came to Toronto in 1927. Only in
bones of the land, grinding out that enormous horseshoe around Hudson Bay, the Canadian Shield,
the warm months, at that time, could I feel I was living in
The glaciers shaped a land of erratic rivers and lakes, a
Canada. Winters in southern Ontario seemed distinctly
land that produced the birchbark canoe, the snowshoe,
unCanadian. The heat and humidity of late June and July
and the toboggan. Which brings me back to winters in
in Tropical Ontario, as I call it, made me feel like an alien.
Prince Albert. Even if the first snow came on Hallowe'en
I can recall only three winters in the deep south of
and remained until April, winter was fun.
Ontario when I could believe I was in my native land. As
There were sleighs everywhere. The few people who
a college student in Toronto, I once snowshoed all the
owned cars laid them up for the winter. The sleighs would
way from Queen's Park to Front Street along the piles of
carry cordwood to be cut into stove lengths and split for
white snow that the ploughs had heaped along the curb
the cooking fire. They carried sacks of coal for furnaces,
of University Avenue. I experienced only two other
and groceries. Every kid had his own small sleigh with
winters winters worthy of the name, in 1977 and 1979, in
steel runners.
London, Ontario. Incredibly, snow stayed on the ground,
In December and January, it would be getting dark
reinforced by a blizzard or two, from December to March,
as we dallied our way home from school. The street
And the sun shone almost daily! It was a real winter,
lights would be on as we hauled our sleds over to the
disrupting traffic, closing schools, and costing the
Sixth Avenue hill. Some of us would go down the hill
taxpayers money.
standing up, keeping a precarious balance by holding
What do we know about winter compared with the
the sleigh's tow rope. The more daring would try the
experience of native people for whom it was an annual
Devil's Dip, an almost vertical drop that was kept icy by
test of survival? We can begin to understand by turning
the kids who lived nearby. A roadside ditch at the
the clock back twenty thousand years to stand on a glacial
bottom of Devil's Dip would give you a tremendous
22
• Daylight in the Swamp • flip. If the ice was right and your sled runners were
To the northwest of the town, above Twenty-third
polished to the ultimate smoothness, you could actually
Street, the sloughs had frozen over to make skating rinks
fly across the road.
of various shapes and sizes. We kept them clean with
But when there were girls around, which was most of
shovels and brooms as we congregated there every night
the time, the bob-sleighs were more fun. Older boys built
to skate. Around a huge fire that we kept burning for the
them, simple structures consisting of a stout plank with
duration, we changed from moccasins to skates, which
two wooden blocks attached. Both blocks sported a pair
consisted of blades screwed into the bottoms of special
of steel runners, the back block fixed, the front one mildly
boots. Moving into a succession of older brothers' boots
steerable. The fortunate owner would lie on his belly, his
in turn, I had problems turning the bigger screws, and
hands on the bar across the front runners, to steer. We
even more problems if the skates fell off the boots. Small
would sit on his back, each of us clinging to the person in
kids hobbled around on bob skates. These had double
front, belly to back, feet held high, wide, and off the
blades and made it impossible to learn a good skating
rushing snow. Girls and boys together, we thundered
rhythm. Skis were unknown in Prince Albert then,
down that hill! At the bottom, as we shot along the
Although I had no shortage of friends, I had a
downtown flats, slowly losing momentum, we all heaved
tendency even then to be a loner. As at Sand Lake, there
in rhythm to make the bobsled break the record. All we
was something about the spruce forest that lured me
had to do was cross the CNR tracks.
across the river on many a Saturday. As I snowshoed
Sometimes we would spill, of course, and we would all
deeper into the bush, seeking rabbit runs where I could
skid around in twenty directions, shrieking with laughter,
set my snares, only the faint, cheerful piping of the
But I have no memory of anyone being hurt, in spite of
chickadees accented the awesome silence. Or I might be
all this sliding going on in the middle of a town road
startled as a spruce bough, bending under its weight of
crossed by three streets. Automobile traffic? Who would
snow, would suddenly snap upward, the snow thumping
be stupid enough to drive a car in winter in those days?
quietly below. I can't recall ever actually snaring a rabbit.
Automobiles were for spring, for the mud-rutted roads,
The trapping was only an excuse.
for summer and clouds of dust billowing from the
In Prince Albert cold, sunny days were the winter
wheels. Winter was a clean season, provided you
norm. When the family moved to Kenora we were still far
overlooked the odd snow bank yellowed by dog messages,
from the grey days of a Toronto or London winter. And
or fresh horse droppings mashed into the white roads by
winters were comfortably dry.
passing delivery sleighs.
23
In the 1930s or so, after I had moved to Toronto, I was
• Daylight in the Swamp • invited to spend the Christmas holidays at the farm of my
It was wise on such mornings to rub your nose and
friend Harry Garbutt. We had a memorable trip from
cheeks now and then to make sure they hadn't gone
Toronto through Hamilton and on to Wallacetown in
numb, the first sign of impending frostbite. In Kenora
Harry's unheated Grey Dort. On the farm, Harry and I
where it would have been a sign of weakness for me to
went snowshoeing one day with fresh snow on the
wrap a scarf around my face (like a baby), I developed a
ground and a Fahrenheit temperature in the low twenties.
technique of keeping every muscle of my face active,
Wearing clothes that would have been adequate for
occasionally slapping my cheeks. The most annoying
twenty below in Prince Albert, I was flabbergasted to find
feature of winter life was when my eyelids began to freeze
that a mild wind was chilling me to the bone! For the first
shut. It took a minute or two, holding a mitt over each
time, I learned what damp cold was.
eye in turn, to melt the lids apart. Normally, we wore
After we moved to Kenora, I still knew nothing of this.
thick woollen toques which we pulled well down over our
Winters were a bit shorter than in Prince Albert, but the
ears. If we were careless and failed to cover the whole ear,
snowfall was about the same. And in either place we
we got our lobes nipped.
could expect days of bright sunshine, from late December
Another body part that needed winter protection
to early March, when the Fahrenheit temperature would
were your feet. These days you can get skidoo boots
drop down to twenty or even forty degrees below zero.
warm enough to sweat in at forty below. But the
But no Kenora morning could match the one in Prince
sheepskin lining makes them so large and clumsy they're
Albert when I went to school with the thermometer at a
no good for much else. Well into the 1920s you could
full sixty below (about -48° Celsius). This was long
still walk into a hardware or clothing store and buy a
before school buses picked kids up, when it was routine,
pair of yellow pigskin moccasins with ankle- or calf-
even for kindergarten children, to walk a mile or more to
high split skin tops. Two or three pairs of woollen socks
school—without a lunch. Frozen cheeks, noses or ear-
made these into ideal all-round winter wear. The leather
lobes were so commonly experienced that no one thought
soles were so smooth, however, that I always wore Cree
much of them. I'll never forget a high-school friend,
or Ojibway moccasins, smoke-tanned, sinew-sewn, and
Ernie, who froze both ears so severely that in the course
with an embroidered tongue and wrap-around tops.
of one morning we watched both his ears swell to twice
Made of moose hide, they gave you a grip on slippery
their normal size. All poor Ernie got for his pains, which
snow or ice surfaces. Although I was privileged to get
were considerable, was wide eyes from the girls and crude
them through Dad's missionary connections, simple,
humour from the boys.
unadorned deer- and moosehide, native-made models
24
• Daylight in the Swamp • were available in the same stores that sold the factory-
read well below zero, to see three or four skiers stripped
made pigskin article.
to the waist and actually sweating as they worked out for
In Kenora, the school held toboggan parties on the
a coming competition. Skis had yet to catch on in the east
iced toboggan slide beside the town's professionally built
and I was amazed, when I came to Toronto, to see only a
ski slide. There were snowshoe parties, sleigh rides and
few skiers and these pushing along with only one pole!
parties in the homes of friends. Here, dancing traditions
Toronto, moreover, had no facilities for jumping,
from the old country, like the four-step schottische and
Torontonians, of course, would be lucky to get skiable
the Sir Roger de Coverley, survived. Curiously, the
snow that lasted more than a week.
square dancing of rural Ontario and the far north had
I started too late to become a proficient skier, nor did
either died out or never taken hold in Kenora, as far as I
I ever shine at skating or hockey, in spite of moving to a
know. Before I could go anywhere on a Saturday,
town pre-eminent for its hockey skills. My only excuse
however, I had to split wood for the kitchen stove, take
was that we lived on Tunnel Island at the other end of
out ashes from the coal furnace, or shovel snow, all
town from the Kenora "Thistles" home rink. Moreover,
chores that devolved increasingly on me and my
none of the friends I made at high school were much
younger brothers, Harold and John, as the older
interested in hockey, even though we shared a class with
brothers left home.
Jimmy Ward, who went on to become a star left-winger
Parties were enjoyable, but I preferred to go off for a
for the Montreal Maroons.
hike in the bush or over the frozen lake surface,
This is not to say that I had no background in
sometimes with fellow scouts, sometimes with a single
shooting and stick-handling. In Prince Albert, as well as
chum, and sometimes alone.
Kenora, every boy took his hockey stick to school and
At that time, half the families of Kenora were Swedish
used the frozen "horse buns" that lay copiously along the
Canadian and skis were everywhere. Kids stumbled along
way as hockey pucks. But I was not a good skater. In
on barrel stave skis while some of the grown ups even
Kenora we were lucky if the bay froze over before the next
competed internationally at ski meets in Winnipeg,
snowfall. Then, even if we had good skating for a few
Minneapolis, and other western cities where Swedes had
days, prolonged by shovelling between snowfalls, the ice
settled. The great feature at the Kenora meets was the
soon cracked, letting water creep into an overnight fall of
jumping but the vast Lake of the Woods became ideal for
snow. Skating would then be over until the spring. Only
hundred-mile races when it froze over. It was not
late winter thaws and early spring suns would melt the
uncommon, on a cold, clear day when the thermometer
winter burden of snow and ice, re-freezing them
25
• Daylight in the Swamp • overnight to create a perfect skating surface, broken only
was then a wide lampwick. Once properly tied, it could
by the remnants of winter drifts. One spring, in 1923 I
be kicked off and slipped on again at will.
believe, we could put on our skates at the boathouse and
Like the birchbark canoe, the Algonkian snowshoe was
enjoy the incredible freedom of skating wherever a
designed to meet a variety of conditions, in this case snow
passing whim might take us, no matter how many miles.
that was soft and fresh, powdery, sugary, hard or crusted.
Lake of the Woods became one vast rink.
Only during a thaw, when the snow gets sticky, it tends to
From first freeze until spring breakup, we could hike
build an icy ball under the foot, a ball that must be
on snowshoes in any direction we wanted, over any
knocked off from time to time. Out on the larger frozen
terrain. Skis were fine for frozen lakes, but impossible if
lakes, the snow builds up in drifts. Add the water that
you wanted to cut across land that was heavily bushed.
wells up beneath them when the ice cracks during cold
The Kenora Indian agent, Captain Edwards, was also Boy
snaps, and you might as well be on skis. Sometimes, on
Scout commissioner for the district. One year he offered a
snowshoes, it's damned if you do and damned if you
prize for the best essay entitled "Why I am a Scout". The
don't. Especially when a blizzard of fine snow brings
prize, which I won, turned out to be a pair of hand-crafted
visibility down to zero and you get bogged down in slush
Ojibway snowshoes. They had upturned, pointed noses to
before you know it.
kick through crusted snow that was too thin to take your
Ice and snow held impromptu lessons in the physics of
weight. Like their blunt-nosed cousin, however, they were
winter. For example, going to town in midwinter, whether
still strong enough to trip you if you made a misstep.
for school or for mail, we used a path across the bay made
One of the sights I found most comical on television
by visitors to the hospital. As winter deepened, the path
in later life was some unfortunate actor trying to
caught drifting snow. The visitors unwittingly tramped it
navigate on the peculiar constructions that people today
down until it formed a hard-packed causeway that
call "snowshoes". They try to pick up the whole shoe with
eventually reached the height of the surrounding snow. I
each step and walk like someone wearing diapers. When
didn't realize this until that early spring day when the
a snowshoe is properly designed and bound to the foot,
pole I always carried suddenly went right through the ice
the tail remains constantly on the snow and it's as easy to
beside the path.
run as to walk. Today's snowshoes come with a clumsy,
Freezeup came gradually, as a rule. The night would be
leather harness. There is no provision for the simple
calm and the temperature would drop abruptly. In the
binding that everyone used fifty years ago. Originally
morning, when I went down to the water, I'd hear hear a
made of deerhide or moosehide, the favoured binding
tinkling all along the shore, lined with little ice fragments 26
• Daylight in the Swamp • that looked for all the world like broken glass. Or I would
Winnipeg River shore on the north side of Tunnel Island,
wake up early one November morning to see the whole
On my solitary hikes I used to test its strength, in the
bay glazed over until a wind came up to break it. We
foolish way kids have, to see whether it would hold my
would watch and pray on such a day, hoping that the ice
weight. If it hadn't, I would have plunged into the icy
would hold, that a second night would make it durable,
river water with little chance of getting out. But this
and that no snow would fall on its surface, ruining it. In
merely added zest to the adventure. I remember watching
Prince Albert we had watched the ponds and sloughs
with intense interest as my brother Albert similarly tested
with equal intensity, testing them with sticks and stones
the ice at the base of the big hydro dam at Norman,
to see how thick they were. In this connection, "rubber
In midwinter, as the ice in Kenora Bay got thicker and
ice" offered a special thrill. It made a fascinating sport to
stronger, it would expand and contract with variations in
glide or walk over ice barely thick enough to support me
temperature until it cracked, growled, and sang with the
but thin enough to bend under my weight, rippling.
stress. Curiously, I can't recall ever having heard a tree
Hanging ice had another lesson to teach. After freeze-
crack as it split in the frost. But I have never lived in the
up in the autumn, as the swamps and creeklets that fed
bush during the winter months. I had one opportunity,
the streams began to falter, all the water levels in the
During the Christmas holidays my friend Smitty and I
larger streams and lakes began to fall. On the sloping
decided to camp overnight in the bush. We loaded our
shores of the larger lakes, the ice merely sagged. When
grub and gear onto a toboggan, which Bob, Smitty's
water levels dropped even more, the ice cracked and
Scotch collie, hauled quite cheerfully. In places where the
water soaked into the snow and over the ice. This in
snow was soft we had to break trail or help pull,
turn froze on the surface, but often slush lay just under
Snowshoes for dogs had yet to be invented,
this crust. Crossing an innocent-looking lake, it was
Our destination was Pine Portage Bay, about twelve
startling, at first, to feel myself plunge through the top
miles from town and a couple of miles past the Sultana
crust. For a split second, before my feet met solid ice
gold mine. We had planned to build a brush shelter and
below the slush, I would think I was going right
an all-night log fire facing its length. But, at the end of the
through. But where the shore drops away abruptly in the
bay we stumbled across an unused trapper's cabin. There
shadow of a sheer rock face, the main ice may break
was a stove but someone had made off with the door. By
sharply away from ice that still grips the shore rock. This
this time we were cold, tired, and hungry enough to lower
leaves a shelf of ice that literally hangs.
radically our standards of winter camping. We lifted the
There was always a lot of hanging ice along the
27
table to lean it against the open doorway, got a fire
• Daylight in the Swamp • roaring in the stove, cooked our supper, and lit a candle.
a chance that just as the ice is getting thick enough to
We had scorned to bring a flashlight. Our preparations
bear your weight, warm air from the south will postpone
for bed were somewhat unwilling because the table
ice formation for three or four days. Worse, a sudden
covered only two-thirds of the doorway and the cold air
two- or three-day cold snap may strand the traveller by
which poured in made a mockery of our efforts to warm
air or water a week or more.
the cabin.
Spring breakup is the more hazardous period. On
We tried sleeping alone but Smitty's bedroll was not
large prairie and shield rivers it comes with a rush, as
made for winter temperatures so he moved in with me. In
rising waters and strong currents move the ice swiftly
the capacious, down-filled sleeping blanket that Dad used
downstream. Unless there is an unpredictable jam, fifty
for his Arctic journeys, we finally dozed off to sleep the
miles of river can clear overnight. In Prince Albert, when
sleep of the dead.
we learned the ice was going out we'd run down to the
Rising in the morning was something else. The cabin
North Saskatchewan and watch the dramatic turbulence
was cold. Very cold. It didn't help much that we had
of the river, tossing brown cakes of ice as it rushed by. Or
slept in our clothes. Except for the warmth of the little
we'd stand on the bridge and thrill to the dynamite blasts
tin stove, we might as well have slept outside. When I
they'd set upstream to break the jam.
tried to cook breakfast, my hands were so stiff that the
When we came to Kenora I learned how differently
first egg dropped out of my fingers to the plank floor—
spring breakup came to the lake country. During the first
and bounced! For dinner we had brought potatoes and
spring, the bay ice opened up a bare seventy-five yards
turnips for a beef stew, but the potatoes proved
from our boathouse. I was so eager to get my canoe into
impossible to peel. We finally put one on a stump and
the water that I lifted it out onto the ice. Straddling it, I
took pot-shots at it with a .22 rifle we had also brought.
alternately lifted and shoved until I reached the open
But even a direct hit merely flattened out on the
water. It was a simple matter, then, to push the canoe
surface. We didn't stay a second night. We only knew
until it teetered on the edge of the ice, shifting my weight
how little we knew about winter camping.
forward (now creeping inside the canoe) until the weaker
In the Shield country there are periods of ten days to
ice gave away and we gently subsided into the water. It
two weeks when all travel is suspended, during freezeup
was rather frustrating, however, to be limited to an
and again during breakup. Even today, a bush aircraft that
opening of water no more than a hundred feet long and
depends on winter skis or summer floats for take-offs and
forty wide.
landings will remain grounded. In the fall there is always
I learned what produced these openings. Wherever
28
• Daylight in the Swamp • there was current under the ice, as was the case offshore
the water. By this time there might well be enough open
from our boathouse, the ice eroded underneath, with no
water to launch a boat. When the boat struck the edge of
hint on the surface of how thin it was getting. I remember
candled ice, ledges would collapse into a slush made up of
a spring hike with Smitty out on the ice of a little lake. It
thousands of tiny, floating slivers.
was a long time, we thought, before breakup. The lake ice
The end of winter was near. When the wind came up,
seemed solid enough. But suddenly, as we clattered on
waves washed against the crumbling ice. The wind
our snowshoes over the lake, I found myself in the water,
pushed the slush to one side of the lake or the other,
spreading my arms wide on the ice around me. While I
according to its direction. Meanwhile, the sun was higher
tried to get out, Smitty stood helpless with laughter at the
every day, the water gradually warmed, and on one
look of pained surprise on my face. He continued to
bright, windy day, one awakened to find the whole lake
laugh as I got one foot up on more solid ice, then rolled
blue and sparkling from shore to shore.
over toward him. Fortunately we were near our
Winters die hard. In spruce thickets that face north,
destination, a cosy cabin with friends waiting in the
snow may linger far into June. Inland pools of ice water
warmth of a Quebec heater. I'd gotten out of the icy water
collect between hummocks of moss. In the pools,
quickly enough to suffer no unpleasant aftereffects.
mosquito larvae await their metamorphosis into the
Another weakening influence on the ice was almost as invisible. In Kenora, everyone burned wood or coal for winter heating and there must have been a lot of soot in the air. For example, if I wanted to know how cold a day it was, I only had to glance out the window facing town. Since windless days were the coldest, if the smoke was going straight up, I'd know the temperature had taken a sharp dive overnight. Whether it was particles of dust or particles of smoke that accumulated on the bay with each snowfall, "candling" also weakened the ice. As each tiny particle warmed under the spring sun, it would melt its way down into the ice, week after week. These minute pits honeycombed the surface. The ice remained more or less solid until the candling process worked its way down to 29
humming clouds that make life miserable for bush workers from May to July.
This page intentionally left blank
chapter three
Bush aApprentic Bush Apprenticeship
They got two logs and put them near enough together for
Albert to Kenora. The northern half of the diocese then
the tea can to rest upon. Then they make the fire between the
coincided with the Territorial District of Keewatin, and it
logs using small stuff, then bigger until they have a roaring
was Dad who established the two Anglican missions to
fire. It does not take them long before the water is boiling
the Innu. He installed Don Marsh (later Bishop Marsh) at
and the tea boiling in it. They also make bannock using
Eskimo Point, and Bill James at the remote Hudson's Bay
flour, beef fat and baking powder . . . knead it in the frying
post at Baker Lake. He also brought a man named Gibson
pan and set it before the fire held up by a stick stuck in the
over from England to fill the vacant mission at Churchill
ground against which the frying pan leans. As soon as it is
and minister to the Chipewayan people there. The year
firm, they take it out and set it edgeways . . . held up by a
1923 marked the first of what would be twice-yearly trips
stick while they start another in the pan. Then they boil the
into the far north. On these he would install missionaries,
meat, goose or duck or rabbit in the tin . . . stir it with a stick
confirm candidates for adult church membership, or
and in a little while it is done well enough . . . they gather
consult with incumbents on current problems.
around and eat the bannock dipping it in the soup in the pot
That year he took in young Leslie Garrett as the first
and taking out a leg or a wing and gnawing the meat off it.
ordained missionary at Big Trout Lake, the largest Cree-
A letter from Bishop Dewdney, dated at York Factory,
Ojibway community in Ontario north of the English and
Manitoba, July 31,1923
Albany Rivers. But this was at the invitation of people who had been prosyletized nearly a quarter of a century
Dad's election as the second Bishop of Keewatin
earlier. They had been converted to evangelical
(pronounced Kee-way-tin) moved our family from Prince
Anglicanism by a catechist named William Dick from
31
Daylight in the Swamp Figure 6,
Locomotive
York Factory. Dick had single-handedly done the same
horizon. The parties slept while stranded to complete the
for half a dozen other northern bands, so effectively that
journey later, when the tide came in. At York Factory the
native catechists had carried on since the turn of the
Hudson Bay supply schooner took them south along the
century. This created the curious situation that the more
bay shore to Fort Severn. Here the fur brigade from Big
isolated northern communities had converted more
Trout and other fur posts waited to deliver the year's fur
thoroughly to Christianity than their southerly
take and pick up the annual delivery of mail, groceries,
neighbours after three hundred years of exposure to
and trade goods for the inland posts. The three-week trip
missionary efforts.
up the Severn and Fawn Rivers was rough, with miles of
In 1923, access to Hudson Bay was by the long sea
"tracking", Dad's first experience of northern canoe travel.
voyage from Montreal or the somewhat precarious
All of this explains how, at the age of eighteen, I had
passage by gas car over the deteriorating Hudson Bay
a chance to serve my bush apprenticeship and to get a
Railway. Dad took Garrett to Big Trout Lake by the latter
glimpse of Ojibway, Cree, Chipewayan and Innu
route. The line ended at Port Nelson, which had an
communities that I would never have gotten to know
artificial harbour created by running the tracks out to
otherwise. Although I had not gone with Dad on that
deep water on steel trestles. They were met at the end of
first trip, I now had the chance to tag along on the
the line by a freight canoe that lay in the mud when the
second trip. He'd had a gall bladder operation following
tide went out, exposing flats that extended over the
the first trip and someone had talked him into taking
32
• Daylight in the Swamp • me along as a travelling companion.
(known in the trade as "silk"), and a capacious sleeping
Our route was a novel one. We went by rail from
robe. He and I were both meticulous about packing the
Kenora to Riverton, a port on the west side of Lake
tent dry as soon as possible. As a result, the tent is still
Winnipeg. From Riverton we took a boat over to
useable, except during a heavy rain when a little spray
Manigotagan and the Salteaux-Ojibway mission at Hole
may come through. The robe, I suspect, will last forever. I inherited both after Dad's retirement. Moses Gore, a pillar of the Jack River church and a widely noted canoeman, took the stern. The second canoeman, whose name I can't recall, might more aptly have been called our "oarsman". Going up the swift Gunisao River, he sat amidships in our canvas-covered eighteen-foot freight canoe, which was fitted with oarlocks for just such travel. Dad travelled "Hudson Bay", that is, as a passenger. I paddled bow. When we camped, I slipped behind the somewhat blurred class barrier of HBC tradition to eat my meals with Dad from a separate grub box. The two Cree were
Figure 7, Aerial photograph of Norway House, 1928
limited to their HBC rations of flour, lard, baking powder for bannock, white beans and "sowbelly" (fat pork). They
River. From there we embarked on the passenger steamer
put this last item to soak during the working day, then
that took us north to Jack River, a couple of miles
boiled a pork and beans meal in it at night. Fifty years
upstream from Norway House, then still active as the
earlier the Hudson Bay Company would have issued them
main collection and distribution centre for the whole
prairie pemmican. But in the earliest days of the fur trade
western fur trade. Meeting the missionary at Jack River,
the staple ration was parched corn, grown and prepared
we proceeded down to Norway House, where we hired
by refugee Hurons at Michilimackinac.
two Cree canoemen and picked up supplies for the fivehundred-mile trip due east to Big Trout.
There was no class barrier when it came to portaging. Although Dad was in his sixty-fifth year, he more than
Dad already had complete camping gear, including a
pulled his weight. He certainly sweated more than any of
six-by-six foot wedge tent made of Egyptian cotton
us, but this may also have had something to do with his
33
• Daylight in the Swamp • conviction that by wearing heavy woollen underwear all
Ascending the swift, turbulent Gunisao made an
summer he kept himself from overheating! He put no
effective beginning for my apprenticeship. Portaging was
load on his back, but carried instead two suitcases. One
an entirely new experience for me. On Lake of the Woods
was large and heavy, the other smaller. Even the small
you could map out a two hundred-mile canoe route
suitcase would become quite heavy by the end of a long
through the labyrinth of channels without ever having to
portage. I can still see the sweat dripping from his face,
lift your craft from the water. As bow man and traveler, I
blood running from blackfly bites behind his ears and
had a hundred things to learn and not a few to re-learn,
perhaps above an eye, swelling it almost shut. On top of
The use of oars was the first shock to my preconceived
these hardships, his upper denture broke a week after we
notions of cultural "purity". As I came to understand how
started and for the next month he ate nothing but
adaptive our Cree canoemen were, I began to realize that
"slops"—hard tack soaked in tea or soup.
in this country you latched onto any innovation that
I never heard this unlordly "Lord Bishop" utter a word
reduced the burden and hazard of bush life,
of complaint. My respect for him was the greater
I was too inferior to our canoemen to allow any
knowing that his work in Saskatchewan had done
arrogant white man's notions of the stoical, lazy, and
nothing to prepare him for bush travel. Driving a horse
humourless "Indian" to linger in my mind. But my image
and buggy or a Model T Ford over prairie trails scarcely
of native people was nevertheless transformed when we
prepared him for episcopal travel in the Shield country.
came to a series of rapids too shallow for the loaded
At the then tiny outpost of Island Lake, we were
canoe but accessible by poling. We unloaded the canoe on
fortunate enough to run into a party on their way back to
the bank of the Gunisao. The crew paddled out to
Norway House. They agreed to take Dad's dental plate
midstream, then exchanged their paddles for poles. At the
with them on the steamer to Selkirk and to send it on by
foot of the rapids, the Cree in the bow found a grip on
train to Dad's Kenora dentist. Whether it could be
the bottom with his pole, then held the canoe in the
repaired and sent back in time to catch us at York Factory
current until the other Cree, Moses, found his grip. Both
we had no way of knowing. It would have to go by train
men would shove the canoe forward, standing and
and gas car to Port Nelson and around to York Factory
putting all their weight into the thrust. Then they had to
either by canoe or power boat. It would be several more flash their poles forward to get new purchase and thrust years before the first bush plane would fly as far north as
forward again. If the bow were to swing only a few inches
Hudson Bay and then only for mineral exploration north
off course, the current would have swung the craft
of Churchill.
broadside, rolling it over the first rock and giving the men
34
• Daylight in the Swamp • a rough, wet ride. It could severely damage the canoe as
shoulder level. By this time, he would be leaning well
well. So these lightning swings of the poles from side to
forward with his head down to take the weight off
side just averted disaster and a pole that slipped on the
his neck.
bottom had to find a new hold in a split second. Watching
I did all these things, adding (as he did) a dunnage bag
the two men shouting and laughing with excitement,
across my shoulders and against my neck to bring
plying their poles with the skill and zest of decades of
comfort. Finally, we would secure the whole load by
mastery as they steadily worked their way to the top of
swinging a light tent bag over our heads, hanging on with
the rapids, changed forever my image of the first
one hand to the draw strings of the bag and letting it rest
Canadians. As we met them on the portage, coming back
equally on the back load and the back of our head. Now
for their loads, they had a gleam of triumph in their eyes.
we were ready to stand up (as well as we could), to give
At the first portage on the Gunisao, Moses introduced
the whole load a settling shake, centre the strap on the
me to northern portaging techniques. The key to the
forehead and look around for an axe, paddle or tea pail to
stability and capacity of the load was the wooden grub
carry with the free hand.
box. About the size of a large grocery carton, it carried
Finally, all we needed was to face the portage path and
everything you needed for daily meals: staples like flour,
let the weight of the load push us forward. It was then
tea, baking powder, and salt; the canned or dried foods
that I understood the experienced gait of my
you favoured; cutlery, plates, cups, candles, matches, and
companions. They moved at a half trot, twisting their
so on. A portage strap, consisting of two six-foot leather
hips so that they glided, rather than bounced, along the
belts stitched to a wide leather headband, was
trail. That way their load remained balanced and secure.
indispensable. Moses showed me a special hitch (actually
On a long portage, when I felt my neck was breaking or
a simple slip knot) which he looped around either end of
my legs were giving out on a steep grade, I would watch,
the grub box. He kept the strap long enough that with the
as they did, for a deadfall of just the right height to rest
headband firmly against his forehead, the box rested on
my load on without taking it off my back. Failing that, a
his back at hip level, like a platform. A second item with a
boulder would suffice, or I would just sit on the ground.
flat surface, such as a pack sack on its side would go on
The latter option raises only one problem, that of getting
next. Here Moses would get up on his feet to make sure
on your feet again!
the load was balanced. Then he would look around for
Travelling the five hundred miles from Norway House
something bulky but lighter, like a carton of dried food,
to Big Trout Lake, I thought I was encountering every
hoisting it over his head to settle on the pack sack at
possible kind of trail and terrain. On later trips in other
35
Daylight in the Swamp • carrying the eighteen-foot canoe over the portages routinely and with ease. Some carrying places were easy to spot: a tripod of spruce poles where meat had been smoked, a grassy sward, axe marks on a tree stump. Others were in the last place you'd expect to find them: a steep rock beside the falls or a particular gap, among dozens, in the willows along the shore. I recall one portage at the head of a sluggish little winding stream. It had a soft bottom in which neither paddles nor poles could operate. We had to pull ourselves along by the overhanging alders, and where Figure 8. Two men ponder map
you began the portage would depend on the depth of
parts of the country, I learned that the variations are
water and where you finally got stuck. You went ashore
almost infinite. Nevertheless, the portages we made on
when you had to.
the Big Trout trip gave me an adequate perspective on
Of course, bush trips by canoe for business purposes
what I was likely to encounter elsewhere in the Canadian
are obsolete today, but it is heartening to see how many
Shield. A certain, broad pattern held for almost every
younger people are taking ambitious trips for the sheer
portage.
challenge of it. As the provincial Ministries of Natural
First, you had to locate the beginning of the portage
Resources and Parks and Recreation map out canoe
trail, the carrying place, as your canoe approached the
routes and establish camps, it has become increasingly
shore. This was easy enough in the south where rangers
necessary for the adventurous to travel farther afield.
had marked the landing places with signs, but on a trip
Maps are now so available, even for remote areas, that
like the Big Trout you needed someone who knew the
some of the challenge has disappeared. In the 1920s the
route. Otherwise you'd waste time searching the shore
only available maps, based on triangulation surveys, were
as you neared the roar of fast water. When we came to
altogether useless for following the kind of route our
Island Lake, neither Moses nor his crewmate knew the
canoemen followed. There were no indications of where
way east, so we had to take on a third man. Abraham,
the portages were, nor of their length. Our canoemen
young and powerfully built, not only found his way
carried maps in their heads, a series of landmarks learned
with uncanny skill, but shamed the other two by
in the company of someone who knew the route. But
36
• Daylight in the Swamp • even after a single trip, to find one's way through the
mature white poplars or an area of sandy ground through
bewildering labyrinth of Shield waterways without map
glades of jack pine. I don't recall seeing either kind of
or compass involves skills beyond the comprehension of
pleasantness on that trip. I do recall one steep grade over
twentieth century technological society.
a great hogsback of bedrock where the trail simply
On the trip to Big Trout I was a lowly apprentice, more ignorant than a Cree lad half my age would have been.
vanished. Luckily, Moses was following just closely enough to see me vanishing into a nearby swamp. He had probably been keeping an eye on me for just such
"How much farther is it?" "How long before we get there?"
occasions. At another point the portage crossed a dry stream bed,
"How soon will we be making camp?"
probably a spring overflow channel, where boulders of
"How long is this portage?"
every size and shape demanded the footwork that a heavy back load made impossible, one of the few times that
Such questions were on my mind again and again
summer that I regretted not wearing moccasins. The big
during the trip. But I knew better than to ask them. Dad
boulders were always a little too far apart to step from
didn't know the answers, anyway, and pride prevented me
one to another and, invariably, as I found my way around
from revealing impatience or weariness to men whose
little boulders I would come to a huge one that I had no
patience appeared infinite, whose energy seemed endless.
way around. I would have to straddle it, load and all, to
A mere liftover was obvious, of course. Whether the
work my legs over it.
river spilled over a lip of bedrock or frothed its way
I was not long on that portage before I learned why
momentarily between great boulders, you could see all
the people of that region were called "Swampy Cree".
you had to do. Lift your luggage over without putting it
Every quarter mile or so the portage would dip down to a
on your back. Then follow with the lightened canoe and
flat area where the drainage was poor or even
within minutes you were on your way again.
nonexistent. Sometimes it would be spruce swamp, where
At the opposite extreme there was the five-mile
I sought roots to stand on to keep out of the soft mud.
portage we made somewhere between Island and Sachigo
Conversely, in an alder swamp I tried to avoid the
Lakes. The only thing to be said in favour of that
treacherous, slanting roots, which were as slippery as
interminable trail was the surprising variety of obstacles
banana peels. They would topple you sideways as soon as
that it offered to weary travellers. Nothing is more
you stepped on them. In the spruce swamp I might run
pleasant than a dry, hard-packed trail through a stand of
into unadulterated muskeg, where the bed of a former
37
• Daylight in the Swamp • shallow lake had filled with rotting vegetation over the
mosquitoes that surrounded us. They formed a thick
centuries to be overgrown with hummocks of sphagnum
scum on the tea and invaded our mouths every time we
moss and Labrador tea, where an occasional stunted
lifted our nets to take a bite of food. Only behind the
spruce would struggle for a foothold. Lacking an
cheesecloth curtains of our tents did we find any respite
experienced eye and foot, I frequently sank to the knee or
and only then after we had singed the wings of each beast
even the crotch in the soft, black muck. With a load of
by the flame of the candle as we hunted them along the
eighty to one hundred pounds on my back and the
tent wall. This was before the days of spray repellents,
suction of the muck, it was a bit wearying to extricate myself, only to sink again a few paces further on. "Muskeg" is an Algonkian word for this special kind of bog, as different from an Irish bog, say, as the Rockies from the mountains of Antrim.
Readers who think the North is uninhabited might
In the shade of the bush a faithful following of
consider its sociable insects. Human beings may be
mosquitoes awaited our passage, and in the sunny
sparsely represented, but few areas of the world have a
passages hordes of blackflies sought their share of the rich
denser population of little creatures so devoted to other
red beverage we provided. We all wore head-nets of fine- inhabitants. mesh cheesecloth with transparent visors. But the visors
I am not an entomologist, but I have some empirical
would cloud over and the netting created an airless
knowledge worth sharing with readers who have ventured
condition that tempted beginners like me to lift the net
this far into the bush of my memoirs. Experts describe
for respite, exposing my skin instantly to the blood lust of
bees, ants, and so on, as social insects because they like to
these minuscule monsters.
live together. But you could not really call such insects
But even our veteran canoemen had to lift their veils
sociable since they take very little interest in humans,
to eat. On one long portage the sun was setting as we
Each species in the order of insects I call sociable, from
emerged onto the edge of a huge swamp. There were
sand fleas to moose flies, seeks intimacy with the human
glints of water here and there through the bulrushes, but
kind. Some attachments, as in the case of the mosquito,
our guides decided it would be dark before we got to
are prolonged. Other engagements, as with the quick visit
open water. There was no alternative but to make our
of the bulldog fly, are fleeting. My own introduction to
camp on what proved to be the worst site of the summer,
the order had come early.
To this day I have seen nothing like the grey clouds of
Proceeding systematically, let me begin with the
38
• Daylight in the Swamp • smallest of them all, the sand flea. It has been aptly called
the females bite) is a delicately built little creature. Let her
the "no-seeum". It is said, and I have evidence, that the
settle on your arm and watch her at work. You scarcely
no-seeum can fly through a window screen without
feel the entry of her hypodermic and the small flood of
folding its wings. To enjoy its attentions to the full, you
anti-coagulant. Interesting how her abdomen swells into
must sleep outdoors in a grassy or sandy place, snugly
a little ruby. Do not, in a sudden rage at this violation of
ensconced in a bedroll. Just as you drop off to sleep an
your person, squash her with a heavy hand. You will make
arm becomes unaccountably itchy. You relieve that with a
a mess of her blood (no longer yours) and mash a tiny
lazy scratch when your other arm begins to itch. The
masterpiece of nature into a formless grey smear.
word has gone around: "Attack." Suddenly your whole
Most readers are familiar with her musical gifts. She is
body is itching, then burning. You leap out of your
no coward but sings as she comes, giving due warning of
bedroll, unable to see your little visitors. Not only is it
her intent. It is a plaintive and interesting song, unlike the
getting dark, the visitors are incredibly small. The best
horrifying unison of a grey swarm. The solitary mosquito
thing you can do is jump in the lake. Failing that, give
approaches her victim daintily. From a distance she
yourself a good towelling and sit by a fire all night. Better
watches for signs of somnolence. There is no hint of
still, move your camp to a place with no sand, no grass or,
unrestrained greed. Gently, she tests your reactions with
at least, a gentle night breeze.
an approaching hum. Closer and closer she circles. Wide
To do the little creatures justice, they are not true
awake now, you listen, paying no attention to a
fleas. It's quite interesting to watch them in daylight as
sympathetic itch here or there. Wait for an authentic
they work their little heads right into a pore in your
landing. Ah! She's on your ear. Slap! Ouch! Silence. Did
skin. A sudden burning sensation becomes an itch.
you get her? Her eerie hum begins again in the middle
There's no satisfaction in squashing them. All you see is
distance. Wait as her hum gets louder. Hold your fire as
a minute smudge.
her wings brush your cheek. She's just playing with you.
Taken all in all, the no-seeum is a sort of filler,
Now she's on your nose. Wait for the probe to go in. Now!
prepared to go to work when there's nothing bigger around to plague you. The mosquito is bigger and certainly much more visible. On a cold morning it flies
Is your nose bleeding? Did you get her? There's that damned hum again.
sluggishly around you in the outhouse. Gratifying to grab it out of the air, squeeze it and drop it to the floor,
When they gather in great numbers, mosquitoes
unmistakably dead. Actually, she (I understand that only
become a whole new monster. Have you ever seen those
39
Daylight in the Swamp movie renditions of a Plains Indian on his horse? Except
crystal clear northern stream? As everyone knows, the
for his breechclout, he is naked. He can afford to be. The
mosquito spawns in stagnant pools and swamps, a
wind has kept the air free of the clouds of insects that
tranquil environment, where it enjoys a relaxed child-
might otherwise make life miserable for him. What then
hood. The blackfly larva knows no tranquillity. It clings
do Woodland Indians like the Cree wear in the bush
desperately to the wet rock in rushing water.
where there is no escape from the bloodthirsty hordes?
During my bush travels, I have developed an acute
On the trip to Big Trout Lake, our Cree canoemen were
awareness of the little fiends. They seem to have a devilish
fully clothed. Had they become aculturated by life on the
contract with the mosquitoes to operate in relays. On
Mission? Did the black felt hat and long trousers
portages, for example, the mosquitoes work the shade
represent their idea of a soft life? They certainly didn't
and the blackflies take over in the sunny patches. Their
wear so much clothing to keep warm in the blazing
most sinister quality is that you seldom see or hear them
summer sun. They fairly ran with sweat along the portage
when it counts most. A quick hand can catch a mosquito
path. No, it must have been the flies, particularly the
in flight, but blackflies fly a swift and erratic pattern like
mosquitoes, that they dressed for. Even so, they were
dancing points of black light. And you never know when
attacked, just as Dad and I were.
they land. You only feel a little something crawling on
I recall one Cree stoically carrying a canoe on his back
your skin, give the area a vague swat and forget about it.
some twenty yards ahead of me along a portage. He
Alas, that was your only warning. This sub-arctic tse-tse
trailed a cloud of mosquitoes so dense that at times I
fly takes its fill painlessly. You might not begrudge it your
could no longer see him, just the cloud. Yet, at the end of
blood if it were not so damn wasteful. Instead of drinking
the portage, he rolled the canoe off his back with no
daintily from a straw like the mosquito, it bites a wound
expression of relief or of aggravation on his face.
and laps but a modicum of what gushes out. The wound
It was on the voyage down the Fawn and Severn Rivers
may bleed for several minutes, leave a red mark, and be
following these portages, that I first made the
sore for a day or more. Worse, your whole system may be
acquaintance (may the day be forever damned) with the
poisoned by a host of the little devils.
greediest, sneakiest and most fervent servant of
The nastiest feature of the blackfly is its sneaky
Beelzebub, the Lord of the Flies. I refer to the vampire of
nature. A mosquito will land and drink anywhere that
the insect world, the blackfly.
skin is exposed. Not the cowardly little crawler. It seeks
Who would ever guess that this misbegotten mini-
out cracks and crannies like the fold behind the ear, the
monster first sees the light of day in the fast water of a
crease of a nostril, corners of eyes and mouth. Failing 40
• Daylight in the Swamp • this, it works along the hairline or beyond it, burying
The moose fly, also known as the bulldog or horse fly,
itself to work invisibly. You will not know it until much
has no subtle arts of approach. It zooms around you in
later when your comb meets blood-clotted hair and a
great circles, then swoops in for the kill. Although people
sizeable bump.
frequently accuse it of biting out huge chunks of flesh, it
The sociable insects have arranged things so that each
merely applies a kind of vacuum pump to your skin. It
species has its own special season. Mosquitoes peak in
feels like a vacuum pump, too. It loves swimmers and
Figure 9, Forest Friends Feasting (on my arm!)
mid-June, closely followed by blackflies, which are
sun-bathers. (If it does any good at all, the moose fly
already plentiful, but which arrive at their own peak
helps prevent skin cancer by driving over-exposed
early in the tourist season. In August these two enemies
campers out of the sun.) The moose fly has one chink in
of humanity are relatively scarce. Campers begin to enjoy
its armour, however. It has a very slow takeoff. If you're
the warm water, fresh breezes, and cool nights only to
quick, you can kill them on landing or, once they've taken
confront other pests.
their pound of flesh, you can extract the maximum
Of the fifty-odd species of flies one finds in the North,
revenge with ease.
three breeds seem determined to remind us that God's
Much the same applies to the deer fly, the name I use
country isn't quite perfect. In order of descending size,
for a fly that is between a moosefly and housefly in size.
these are the moose fly, deer fly, and dog fly. Unlike the
Its bite is less formidable except for a variety that has a
early summer shifts, they don't depend on calm air to get
decorative black pattern on otherwise transparent
to their hosts. They love a windy day.
wings. This one seems to produce secondary
41
• Daylight in the Swamp • complications like the swelling of a whole arm or leg.
Always on the exposed ankle. Invariably you don't
There's nothing more blissful than a day in mid-
expect it. Invariably the little nipper, a dogfly, escapes.
August. You and your partner are paddling across a wide
Indistinguishable from a small housefly, the dogfly can
stretch of water, miles from any shore, quartering into a
bite through heavy bush socks with mysterious ease.
gusty wind just cool enough to temper the heat of the
There's no swelling or itching afterwards, just that one
sun. Overhead, white, fleecy clouds whip across the
absolutely savage and completely uncalled for nip. Being
empyrean. At one with yourself and your partner, and, for
too brief to provide any nourishment for the dogfly, I
that matter with the universe, you breathe deeply the
must assume the nip is just its way of being sociable.
clean pure air, your brain cleansed of urban concerns. In short, you're feeling good. And then—ouch! Figure 1 0. Character studies
I have never felt so thankful nor understood so well the need, for a seventh day on which to rest as I did on that trip. On Sundays, by Biblical command, we obeyed regardless of contingencies such as location or schedule. Our three canoemen, all devout churchmen, each carried a dog-eared prayer book in Cree syllabics. Every evening as well Dad conducted a brief prayer session, reading the Lord's Prayer in Cree. And we sang a hymn or two to the accompaniment of my mouth organ. On some portages I ran into trouble through my determination to show my native tutors that I was no weakling. With a hefty load already on my back, unable to bend down without my knee collapsing, I'd point to one more item for a top load. Moses would look at me quizzically but cheerfully accede and I'd go staggering up the trail. After the first hundred yards the load would become intolerable, the nerves of my neck and spine 42
• Daylight in the Swamp • would shriek for relief, the open skin would itch
where the water was only a foot or two deep. I stripped
massively, and the sweat would pour in rivulets from
and stepped in.
every pore of my body. Sometimes I would swallow my
The next thing I knew, I was holding onto the rock for
pride and take a rest while the others passed by. But as
dear life, my feet searching for bottom in the black muck.
time went on, I would endure the agony knowing that
It was an instant reflex, it probably saved my life. I
just when I reached the point of collapse there would be
climbed out onto the rock, dressed and, as I made my way
a glint of light down the trail. I would feel a faint
back to camp, fantasized what could have happened.
stirring in the air and as it began to cool my sweat-
Floundering in the muck. Going under. Opening my
soaked shirt, a surge of strength would walk me on to
mouth to yell for help only to have it fill with loonshit.
emerge by open shore.
Going down again. Nobody worrying about me back at
I'd sink to the ground, slip off my load, and experience
the camp. Going down again. Choking. Blacking out as
such exquisite relief from a gentle breeze off the water
the sun set and darkness cloaks the scene. Moses finding
that I could have shouted with the joy of it. Then, two
my white corpse half buried in the black muck.
quick tugs on the slip knots of the portage strap would
I cannot leave this account of my bush apprenticeship
release it for the return trip. I'd loop the strap and start
without paying tribute to our canoemen. Not merely to
up the trail again, my back so relieved of its load that I
their intelligence in finding their way to a given
felt as if I were walking on air. Nevertheless, I'd race
destination without map or compass, depending only on
joyously back along the trail to load myself with another
their memory of subtle clues and landmarks. But to their
intolerable burden.
untiring energy, the exact antithesis of the "lazy Indian"
If we camped early after a hard day's slogging I might cool off in the water to refresh myself, unless it was a fly-
stereotype. Invariably, they were up at first light, loading the canoe while Dad and I finished breakfast.
infested creek with an inhospitable, willowed bank.
Around noon we usually had a tea break. But no break
Nearing Big Trout Lake on a long, hot day, we camped at
in the city office was over so fast. We'd barely be out of
the end of a shallow bay. The bottom was black muck,
the canoe before one of the men had collected two thick
none too fragrant. So I walked along the rock shore of the
handfuls of dry spruce twigs while another thrusted a
inlet, expecting to get out to deep water and leave the
sharpened green stick into the ground at a slant. The
muck behind. But the going was rough. Old fire slash
twigs would flame up at the touch of a match and within
with deadfall lay every which way. So I decided to simply
seconds the tea pail of lake water would be boiling. The
wade out to deep water from a point on the rocky shore
men would throw in a generous handful of tea leaves, let
43
Daylight in the Swamp it boil vigorously for a while, set it aside to steep, then douse it with a half cup of cold water to settle the leaves. I call the result "bush tea" a powerful brew with enough tannin to coat the walls of your stomach, so bitter that I would throw twice the normal amount of sugar into my cup. Dad and I both added condensed milk in lieu of the lunch our canoemen had no time for. They drank their tea straight, passing the pail back and forth for the rest of the day, whenever they thirsted. At the end of the day there was time to build a proper cooking fire, then to refuel our energies for the day ahead. Dad's description of the cooking, quoted from his 1923 letter at the beginning of this chapter, should suffice. On the whole trip from Norway House to Big Trout Lake, we encountered other travelers only once. Two or three days beyond Island Lake, we ran into a Cree family returning from a berry-picking excursion. The meeting seemed casual enough at the time. It didn't come home to me until we reached Big Trout that I had been engaging in time travel.
44
chapter four
History is Now
The Indians are very friendly. They love the Church and
then, were the Big Trout people, frequently referred to as
the prayers and singing. They have not very much. They
"Bible Cree," so entirely devoted to nineteenth-century
take "debt" from the company and they go out trapping and
evangelical Anglicanism?
bring in furs to pay off the "debt". They have no way of
In retrospect, I can see a number of factors that created
keeping anything [from spoiling]. All summer they live in
this contrast. In the south, the emergence of the
teepees and some of them in winter as well. But they take
Midaywaywin,* deeply rooted in earlier beliefs and
good care of their books and each has a bag made the right
practices, provided an alternative to Christianity. In the
size to hold them and wherever they go their hymn book
north, there was almost total dependence on the fur trade
and prayer book go with them.
and an absence of disruptive influences such as alcohol, rival denominations, and exposure to irresponsible white
From my father's letter dated at York Factory, July 21, 1923
elements. These factors created a climate of acceptance for I was only fifteen when Dad took me down to
the intruding religion and made it possible for William
Neangoshing. For me, then, history was a dull subject.
Dick, a Cree catechist from Norway House, to convert
Especially Canadian history, an obligatory high school
single-handedly all the major bands of northernmost
subject that was almost exclusively about the weary
Ontario. This happened just after the turn of the century,
details of constitutional change: the Durham Report, the
and for the next two decades local catechists kept the new
Family Compact, and all that. Curiously, the Ojibway
faith alive with only rare visits from white missionaries.
bands that had been exposed to Christian missionaries for three centuries were still predominantly "pagan". Why
* An initiatic medicine society with degrees of membership
45
Daylight in the Swamp Dick, in turn, had been inspired by Richard Fairies,
rather bland taste) and muskeg fruit. They had three large
the veteran missionary at York Factory. More
sacks full of muskeg fruit, the size, shape and texture of
significantly, Dick brought with him bound copies of
raspberries but mushy and almost transparent when ripe.
Anglican prayer and hymn books, translated into Cree,
Our crew had immediately begun a vigorous dialogue
and printed in the syllables invented by James Evans, a
with the family. Engaged in the millennia-old practice of
Methodist missionary at Norway House in 1841. The
bartering, they had unwrapped their sowbelly and
beauty of the syllabic system was that it crossed the
opened up their bean sacks while the family members
barriers of dialect. Although the Big Trout people spoke a
doled out sticky handfuls of berries.
dialect more like Ojibway than Cree, they had no problem reading the translated hymns and prayers.
I didn't need to know the language to understand what was going on. Apparently, our men had the
Not until I revisited the Big Trout community forty-
advantage. They laid out one end of fat-pork and a small
three years later did I confront the depth of their
bag of beans, waiting patiently until the travellers
devotion and faith. Led by a catechist called McKay, a
reluctantly handed over the final portion of berries.
whole group had set up a new settlement at Kasabonika,
Moses handed me a handful from the small sack our men
lest their children be contaminated by government
had acquired. They were badly squashed and looked
personnel, free traders, bush pilots and so on, all of
anything but palatable. I ate them, but Dad shook his
whom broke the Sabbath routinely, swore, drank, and
head decisively after one glance. It never occurred to me
shamelessly committed adultery.
at the time that I was witnessing the world's oldest form
Approaching Big Trout in the summer of 1923, I had
of commercial transaction: barter.
no idea of what lay ahead. We had been following such a
Nor did I realize that the kind of silk-embroidered
little-travelled route that our Norway House crew didn't
sinew-sewn moosehide moccasins I was wearing (out)
know the way past Island Lake. There, on the Manitoba-
would be museum pieces a few decades later. I had
Ontario boundary we had picked up the new guide,
already gone through a dozen or more pairs of the
Abraham. Then, two days out of Island Lake, we
moccasins. Dad would bring them as gifts from the
encountered the Cree family returning from their
northerns missions and I wore them every winter. The
berrying excursion. I did not realize the historical
loss, in retrospect, is criminal.
significance of that lone encounter at the time.
We camped for the last time on an island at the west
The family had been harvesting yellowberries
end of Big Trout Lake itself. In the morning, everybody
(sometimes called "bakeapple berries" owing to their
took time to clean and tidy up for our arrival at the 46
Daylight in the Swamp mission. Dad had two or three days' growth of beard to
mission house to explore the village. With its population
remove with a straight razor. In the excitement of
of eight hundred Cree-Ojibway, it was the largest native
anticipation he nicked himself. We broke camp, then set
community and fur-trading centre in northwestern
out for the last, short leg. We followed a canal cut through
Ontario. The sound of sawing drew me to the two village
a sand bar and there, ahead, was the goal of our journey.
saw-pits. A log lay along a length of scaffold where two
The settlement was hidden behind a high bank at the
men operated a huge pit saw. One man stood in the pit
landing. The sight we beheld made it clear that this was a
and the other on the scaffold. Together they worked the
major population centre. Every man, woman, and child
saw up and down on manpower alone. I learned later that
crowded the bank beside a palisade of stout saplings. It
all the lumber for the church, mission house, post, and
was not a military structure but a ten-foot fence that
Company servants'* dwellings had been cut in this
protected the Hudson's Bay Company's vegetable garden
manner. My first visit to the Company store took me even
from marauding bears. There was no cheering, but volley
further back in history. Muzzle-loading guns, powder,
after volley of gunshots proclaimed our welcome. As we
shot, and ramrods were still on sale for the older men,
ascended the hill, I felt like royalty, shaking hands with
who still used them.
friendly-faced men, shy women, grinning little boys and
Equally anachronistic (as I was to learn at Lac Seul the
giggling little girls. We endlessly repeated "Wahchee", the
following summer) was the community's Sunday
Cree adaptation of an old British sailors' greeting from
observance. Granted, the Bishop's presence would attract
centuries earlier: "What cheer?"*
a large attendance, but it seemed the whole population of
This was Big Trout Lake. In the south the "kicker" was
more than four hundred attended en masse every Sunday.
already replacing what Dad called the "armstrong engine".
It was a sight to see whole families converging by divers
Tractors had begun hauling supplies to the gold rush at
broad paths to the church doorstep. Men in sober serge
Red Lake and the first bush planes had ventured as far
suits and tieless white shirts, the women in skirts and
north as Hudson Bay. But Big Trout had yet to see its first
head shawls of all colours, particularly red plaids,
aircraft or any other gas-powered machine.
children of all sizes tagging along, and babies smiling
The first morning of our stay, I wandered out of the *In the south the old people still used "Bozhoo", adapted from the French "Bonjour". One might almost have drawn the boundaries of English and French fur trade penetration by the distribution of the two greetings.
47
from beaded tikinagans on their mothers' backs. In the *The term "servant" applied to employees trained by the Hudson's Bay Company as carpenters, blacksmiths, clerks, and so on.
• Daylight in the Swamp • church, the standing-room-only congregation generated
example, they would frequently marry a local woman, as
a powerful odour of fish and smoke. The Big Trout
did Garrett when his English wife died. When we visited
people lived largely on fish and their clothing smelled of
Big Trout, Garrett's wife already had two babies. So
smoke. I found the redolence far from unattractive.
integrated did many veterans of either service become
When the service began, worn hymn books and prayer
that they routinely cut their furloughs short. They would
books emerged from specially sewn bags. The whole
become acutely uncomfortable in the cities, where change
congregation joined in the hymns, singing in unison. Not
was endemic and social life complex and confusing. They
merely the incomprehensible Cree words but their
may also have preferred being big frogs in little puddles
strange, droning glissandos transformed tunes familiar
instead of little frogs in a sea of urban society.
from childhood into exotic new chants. This only
Recruits for Anglican mission work came mainly from
reinforced my feeling that I was an alien visitor from
England, working class clergy eager to break the class
another time.
barrier that restricted holy orders to those of gentle birth.
For Leslie Garrett and his wife, as well as for the
Similarly, the more northerly Roman Catholic missions
missionaries we would visit later that summer, the crate
were manned almost exclusively by Oblate fathers from
of oranges Dad had brought with him were like manna
Belgium! In any event, as Anglican missionary fervour
from heaven. Fresh fruit, apart from bakeapple berries,
subsided, the "Romans" tended to move in. These, in
was something that missionaries and traders never saw.
turn, would often give way to Protestant evangelists from
The cost of transportation precluded such delicacies.
the United States.
Only vegetables from Company and mission gardens
William Dick had dealt the local shamans a decisive
supplemented the meals of manager and missionary. But
blow when he convinced the community that his three-
dietary hardships were small compared to the six-year
in-one Manitou was far more powerful than any
term of service that both men were expected to put in.
supernatural being the shamans could could call on. As
Both trader and missionary were welded to the
a replacement of sorts for their local shaman, however,
community by the six-year stint that each was expected to
the native community expected the missionary to have
serve, before either could enjoy a one-year furlough. If
some medical skills. The trader, on the other hand, had
the Company exploited the native people, it also exploited
the "most to give away." Therefore, in accord with
the post manager. The isolation, long cold winters, and
timeless tradition, he was the most prestigious person in
low pay during his six-year stint created a bond of
the community. His power to advance credit to the
common hardship with the rest of the community. For
natives, even to tap into government funds to relieve 48
Daylight in the Swamp particular cases of hardship, only reinforced his status.
to the sound of gunshots, the huge twenty-two-foot
The federal government also subsidized education on
canoes, each with a crew of five or six, swung out from
the reserves, but only after a missionary had been
the post to head for the outlet from Big Trout Lake. On
installed. Children attended school in the summer as long
this trip I was just as much a passenger as Dad. I sat on a
as their families remained at the post. But berry-picking,
fur bale facing the stern where I could study the
fishing, and hunting excursions frequently interrupted
steersman, whose style and techniques fascinated me.
even that modicum of schooling. As time went by,
His paddle, half again as long as those of his crew, was
however, old people increasingly preferred to stay in
in constant motion. With a man almost immediately in
cabins clustered along the shores adjacent to the post,
front of him, he nevertheless deftly swung his paddle
rather than endure the afflictions of old age in isolated
overhead to change sides. Steering entirely by turning his
trap-line cabins. In this way the year-round residency of
paddle blade obliquely to pull the stern right or left as the
the settlement increased and so did government services.
course demanded, he never used it as a rudder. Since that
Even against the perspectives I acquired in later years,
day, I have often practised flipping my paddle overhead,
I still regard the Big Trout community (as I witnessed it
just for the feel of it. But I never achieved that rhythm of
during that brief stay) as healthy and hard-working. A
stroke whereby the paddle would leap out of the water of
successful symbiosis of trappers and their families, of
its own accord, dropping smoothly and silently into the
trader and missionary, the community remained isolated
water on the other side to move again, obedient to its
from outside influences by the gruelling demands of
master's hand.
summer access by canoe or winter access by dogsled. All
The Fawn River, a swift stream that cut through the
of this changed, unfortunately, with the advent of
northern edge of the Canadian Shield, tumbled now and
mechanized transportation, the arrival of float planes and
again in rapids over shelves of limestone. The Fawn
the building of roads. Although it took longer for these
emptied into the Severn and the Severn emptied into
influences to reach Big Trout, they were already well
Hudson Bay at Fort Severn. The fur brigade was to
advanced further south, as I was to learn the following
rendezvous with the schooner Fort York on its return
summer at Lac Seul.
from eastern ports of call on Hudson Bay.
Soon enough—all too soon—it was time to leave the
We spent much time drifting with the current,
Big Trout settlement. Dad's itinerary had taken advantage
interrupted by only occasional carries. On portages
of the annual fur brigade that had just arrived, to
around the shallower rapids, four men carried the heavy
continue down the Fawn and Severn Rivers. One by one,
craft upside down, gunwhales resting on their shoulders.
49
• Daylight in the Swamp • On one oppresively hot day, by the time the crews had
and built like an Atlantic dory. Dragged over portages by
relayed their loads over a half-mile portage, the trail was
manpower only, they could transport horses, cattle and
slippery with sweat. But the men were all in rollicking
pianos far into the hinterland.
good humour. The trip was all downstream and they
At night we camped instead of drifting as the fur
seemed unmindful that in a few days they faced a back-
brigade normally did. To drift all night, they would lash
breaking return.
logs to the sides of their canoes to prevent them from
In earlier days the huge wooden York boats had been
straying into a backwash. That way they could sleep while
used to freight in supplies. At one portage, our head
the canoes threaded their way downstream. The entire
canoeman pointed out the former width of the portage
trip of three hundred miles normally took just three days.
road. It was still visible in the contrast between new
Because we camped, the trip would take five.
growth on either side of the trail against untouched forest
Going up the rivers was a different matter, I heard.
walls. The York boats were thirty feet long, ten feet wide,
The crews would have to "track" much of the way. One
Figure 11. Untitled study of lake
50
• Daylight in the Swamp • man would stay in the canoe to steer while the rest of the
counting the liftovers). A few days later, as the bay
crew, finding what footing they could in or out of the
approached high tide, the Fort York arrived. The coastal
water, hauled on long tump lines. For every day it took to
schooner was duly loaded in a feverish bustle and we
descend the rivers, it took a week to go back up, for this
embarked for the two-hundred-mile-plus voyage to York
was part of the fur brigade's annual route. On the return
Factory.
journey portages were a welcome relief. The ease of air
The Fort York had no passenger accommodation,
travel today makes it impossible to convey the sense of
When the vessel was loaded and the tide was right, Dad
distance as Canadians used to experience it. In retrospect,
and I boarded and followed one of the crew to our
the gruelling five hundred miles from Norway House to
sleeping quarters in the hold. We laid out our sleeping
Big Trout Lake seemed like a thousand compared to the
bags, then came up on the deck for air. Fortunately, the
three hundred miles down the Fawn and Severn Rivers.
trip to York Factory was a short one. Our two nights in
Outside of the portages, I recall few details of that journey, probably because I spent a lot of time dozing
the hold were only slightly less nightmarish than the trip that still lay ahead of us.
under a big tarpaulin as we passed mile after mile of
At York Factory we were met not only by the veteran
gravel banks topped by an endless succession of black
Anglican missionary, Archdeacon Richard Fairies, but by
spruce. I looked forward to seeing the great bay itself. All
Dad's dentures which had been repaired and sent ahead,
my young life Hudson Bay had a mystical attraction for
Fairies, a warm, unpretentious human being, was totally
me. But as we turned the last bend of the river and Fort
dedicated to his work with the northern Cree of
Severn came into view at the crest of fifty-foot clay banks,
Manitoba. He also presided over a substantial revision of
I looked in vain for the expanse of open water. Only after
E.A. Watkin's Dictionary of the Cree Language. He headed
we had landed to the sound of a fifty gun salute and
the committee of five veteran missionaries who, familiar
climbed the rickety steps up from the dock did I glimpse
with Cree dialects from northern Saskatchewan to
the prize. It was low tide. The river wound its tentacles
Labrador, laboured to enrich the earlier, 1865 edition,
over mud flats that extended almost to the horizon. But
The huge HBC warehouse, which served the whole
there beyond the flats was a gleam of open water, that
western fur trade, still stood. It was a fine old building,
fabled arm of the Atlantic Ocean, Hudson Bay.
built nearly a century earlier by ship's carpenters. Once
Looking back on that eight hundred mile trip from
again I became aware of history and the passage of time.
Norway House, I counted fifty-three notches on the
On a tour of the complex, we saw the room where R. M.
headband of my portage strap, one for each portage (not
Ballantyne, writer of boys' fiction, had slept while
51
Daylight in the Swamp working as an HBC apprentice. Years later I read with
now bears his name. Munk's expedition had been even
great sadness that the warehouse was slated for
more tragic. He, another man, and the ship's boy alone
demolition and that the Post was being abandoned.
survived scurvy while wintering in this harbour. The rest
At the time we visited York Factory, the mission
of the crew all perished.
congregation had just laid the foundation of their new
During our visit to Fort Churchill we stayed at the
church and they asked Dad to consecrate it. Since the
mission house with the Gibsons of England whom Dad
building would be of frame construction, it occurred to
had brought to the Fort on an earlier trip. Each morning
Dad that it ought to have a wooden foundation "stone".
of our stay, Mrs. Gibson brought up two cups of
He delegated me to carve out a hollow space within the
powerfully brewed tea. Much as Dad admired the British,
block where we could deposit coins of the realm, a
this alien custom was just too much. We poured our tea
newspaper, and so on. Thirty years later, when I learned
into the guest chamber pots. I presume Dad later emptied
that the building had outlived its usefulness and been
the pots in accordance with his predeliction for humble
torn down, it was traumatic to realize that I had outlived
chores. If the Gibsons did it, however, they must have
a church!
been concerned about the state of our kidneys.
The outgoing supply ship, the Nascopie, gave us a lift
For me, the highlight of our Fort Churchill sojourn
to Fort Churchill, just then becoming a deep-water port.
was the eight mile hike I took along the north side of the
A new right of way had been cut through the muskeg
river and harbour to visit the ruins of Fort Prince of
from the end of steel of the Hudson Bay Railway to the
Wales. A melancholy sight, its massive stone walls
new port. Construction workers were busy laying out a
emerged a mere six to eight feet above the surrounding
grain elevator and town site. Two arms of the last
brush. A few dismounted cannon barrels lay aging among
outcrop of Pre-Cambrian rock I was to see that summer
the weeds that graced the top of the wall. The old fort had
enclosed a fine salt-water harbour scoured by the
changed little since Samuel Hearne had meekly
outflow of the Churchill River. In the mission church just
surrendered it to the French without firing a shot. The
a few miles up the same river, Dad dedicated a bronze
French had made a fruitless attempt to destroy the fort,
plaque sent to him by the Danish government. The
including the cannons which had never fired a shot
plaque commemorated the voyage of Jens Munk, the first
except, possibly, in practice.
European to come upon the harbour. The Danish
Following the fort wall for some distance, I came upon
explorer had wintered here a mere ten years after Henry
a petroglyph I had already heard about. Carved in the
Hudson had been set adrift with his son in the bay that
wall itself, the drawing depicted a man who had been
52
• Daylight in the Swamp • hung (as the story went) for stealing a goose, a strange
Fort Churchill stood at the extreme limit of the
crime in a land where geese abounded. But perhaps this
treeline on the west side of Hudson Bay. Only a few
was a British goose, the last of its kind at the lonely
thickets of stunted spruce appeared along the north shore
outpost and carefully fattened for Christmas festivities.
of the river. On my hike to Fort Prince of Wales, I found a
I can't leave the subject of Hearne (or drawings)
single paper birch, a mere twenty inches high and a
without recounting an episode from Hearne's expedition
finger's width at the base. Sectioning the "trunk" with my
down the Coppermine River. An astute Cree fur trader by
jacknife, I counted twenty-eight rings! North of this one,
the name of Matonnabee annually led a large party of
I could see no more trees.
natives, mostly Chipewayan, to Fort Prince of Wales to
We left Fort Churchill on one of the two HBC supply
trade the winter's take of furs for the products of British
ships, ocean-going vessels that sailed out of Montreal
factories. With every visit, Matonnabee made the same
every year to service communities in the bay and the
strange request of Hearne. He assumed, from all the
eastern Arctic. Dad had already travelled on both ships,
magical trade goods that Hearne dispensed, that the
bringing out the Gibsons to Fort Churchill in 1925 on the
post's governor had extraordinary supernatural powers.
Nascopie. In succeeding years he had established two new
Matonnabee had an enemy whom he wanted to get rid
missions to the Innu. He ordained Don Marsh, installing
of. Would Hearne, as a personal favour, use a modicum of
him at Eskimo Point and in 1929 or (30 brought Bill
his personal power to destroy the man? On each of
James to Baker Lake.
Matonnabee's visits, year after year, Hearne protested that
It is difficult to imagine a more Godforsaken site for a
he had no such power. Until he wearied of saying no and
community than the one that confronted us as the ship
finally agreed. Selecting a sheet of parchment, he created
anchored well off the shore of Eskimo Point. The ship's
a drawing. First he drew a tree trunk, inscribed an eye in
lighter began to relay supplies to the post and mission.
it, then drew a hand sticking out from the left side. Then
Marsh, who would later become Bishop of the Arctic, had
he drew a picture of himself shoving a bayonet blade
built a neat little church and mission house. The tiny
(then a popular trade item) into the chest of another
group of buildings lined the crest of a gravel and boulder
man, who was falling.
ridge that stretched monotonously eastward into the
The following spring, Matonnabee came back to
point and westward to infinity. The landscape was not
Hearne beaming with gratitude. The intended victim,
merely treeless, it had no grass of any description and
having merely heard of the magic drawing, stopped
even the lichens could scarcely find a haven.
eating and died of pure fear within a week! 53
The people were known as the Caribou Eskimo,
• Daylight in the Swamp • Mowat's "People of the Deer." They followed and hunted
sacks laid side by side across the beam of the hold
the migrating herds of caribou throughout the year,
forming a "bed" that was eight feet long and some thirty
supplementing their diet with freshwater fish. In the
inches wide. Over this luxurious mattress Dad and I
summer they lived in tents of caribou hide supported by
arranged our two bedrolls. We crawled in between them
driftwood. They still wore the (now outmoded) sealskin
and tried to find a soft spot that would encourage sleep.
and caribou clothing. Women kept their babies in a
Dad took the inside. This left me just enough room, by
capacious hood that hung from their shoulders. They
crowding him a bit, to balance on the edge of the sacks
breast-fed their children up to the age of three or four.
next to the bilge. A few feet forward of us the motor
Everyone wore calf-length boots known locally as
chugged away, spewing a cloud of oil and gas fumes. The
"mukluks", a borrowed word that identified a peculiar
only benefit conferred by the motor, apart from
combination of tanned moosehide moccasins and duffle
transporting us, was warmth.
leggings. I was still wearing my Ojibway moccasins when
I must have slept in spite of everything for the next
I arrived at Eskimo Point. But I soon acquired the
thing I knew the motor had fallen silent, leaving only the
waterproof sealskin boots that were essential to any
sound of water sloshing back and forth in the bilge.
excursion inland, where the permafrost supported
Evidently we had anchored somewhere, the tide was
shallow pools everywhere. Incidentally, in the English of
going out and the ship rocked on its keel.
the Arctic, the word "husky" (or "Esky") meant Eskimo. A
Somehow, my sleeping space had diminished. I had to
"husky dog", later shortened to "husky," continued to
put my hand down on the bottom in order to avoid
mean an Eskimo dog.
falling off the sacks altogether. I stayed like this for some
We left Eskimo Point on September 3 in a mild
time, my hand in the cold, greasy, eternally sloshing bilge.
snowstorm for the return journey to Fort Churchill. We
Gradually, too gradually, the tide turned, the rocking
travelled in an Eskimo-owned Peterhead launch powered
subsided and we seemed to be afloat again. The motor
by an ancient gasoline motor. Crewed by the skipper and
started and we were moving. I must have gone to sleep
his wife, and carrying four passengers, she was some
with my hand still in the bilge for, when I awoke, I
thirty feet long with a cabin, a tiny galley aft, and a
retained my beachhead on the coal sacks. Looking back
capacious hold. Protocol demanded that the skipper and
on all the places I've ever slept, I'd have to say that the
his wife occupy the cabin, and that the other passengers
hold of that launch was incomparably the worst.
stay on deck while the bishop and his son used a sort of
I never learned whether Dad slept or not.
sleeping platform below deck. It consisted of a row of coal
Characteristically, he uttered no complaint. For a man
54
• Daylight in the Swamp • who'd had a gall bladder operation that very spring, he
deck of the boat and were off. One of the men paddled
stood up remarkably well to every ruggedness.
stern, the other perched on the thwart behind me, his
The next day brought an unexpected reward. Just as
.303 at the ready. A series of huge boulders obscured the
we reached the mouth of Little Seal River, halfway to
mouth of the river, and concealed our approach from a
Churchill, our skipper announced that the faltering
herd of fresh water seals sunning themselves beyond. We
motor had developed a cracked cylinder. It seemed like a
moved cautiously between the boulders but within
suspicious coincidence as we anchored conveniently close
seconds the seals were all splashing into the water and we
to a stony beach. The two deck passengers disappeared
paddled off in hot pursuit. A head that was uncannily like
ashore. An hour or two later, I followed them for my first a man's emerged suddenly from the water just in front of look at the land. I found myself on a flat, gravelly plain sprinkled everywhere by shallow, icy pools of all shapes and sizes,
us and, at the same instant, the gun went off over my head. A red splash appeared in the centre of the seal's head and it sank below the surface.
They all had the same depth, about a foot and a half, the
That's when I learned what a harpoon is for. Dead sea
depth of the unthawed permafrost. Half an hour inland I
mammals sink and this one was doing just that. A minute
spied a gravel ridge, and made for it to get a view of the
later we found the body on the river bed under six feet of
land beyond. At the crest was a little stone structure, a
fast, clear water. But the men made no attempt to get it.
wall of sorts. I had just drawn level with the top when a
Instead, the hunter reached for a small canvas bag and
wild-looking human head appeared. My heart hammered
withdrew a stiff coil of wire and a file. In a minute he had
until I recognized one of our fellow passengers, telescope filed a sharp point on one end of the wire. In another in hand. He had been scanning the horizon for caribou
minute he had lashed the wire to the end of the paddle and
and offered me a look at one through his telescope. I
had bent the sharp end of the wire into a hook. It took us
couldn't be sure whether it was an animal or a white
half an hour to re-locate the dead seal and not a little skill
boulder that I saw. Since neither of us had a word in the
to keep the canoe in place while the hunter hooked the
other's language, I never found out.
animal. Brought to the surface, the seal was too heavy to lift
Next morning, our skipper was still wrestling with the
into the canoe, so we towed it to the shore, dragged it out
engine, so there was still time to spend at our anchorage,
of the water, and cut it into three bloody chunks. These we
When he explained that the men wanted to hunt seal and
could lift into the canoe. The next morning I had my first
needed someone to paddle bow, I jumped at the chance,
taste of seal liver, fishy but good.
We launched the seventeen-foot freight canoe from the
55
By noon the engine was functioning and we were on
• Daylight in the Swamp • our way again. When we arrived at Churchill, we learned
muskeg. We went up, circling and searching for the line,
that we had just missed the last outbound supply boat,
but the weather was clouding over. The pilot decided to
For ten days we strolled the beach or moped under
land on one of the hundreds of small shallow lakes that
canvas, increasingly convinced that we would have to
splattered the sub-Arctic landscape. I remember as if it
wait for freeze-up and go out by dogsled. All the while I
were only yesterday the sensations of landing. First the
thought about the girl I left behind me (whoever it was),
silence when he cut the motor, the wind singing in the
She too, would watch the days of our reunion dwindle,
struts. Then the sensation of drifting down like a falling
There was less and less time between my return to
leaf, as the pilot tilted the plane first to port, then to
Kenora and my departure for a second undergraduate
starboard, sideslipping right and left (a practice now
term in Toronto.
forbidden by the Ministry of Transport) to cut altitude
Salvation came from the sky, logically enough for a
rapidly. The earth levelled off at the treetops. The water
Bishop's party. A Fairchild cabin monoplane on floats
gleamed below the pontoons just before the splash and
buzzed into the Fort Churchill harbour. I will never
sudden drag as we slowed to a stop, just before hitting
forget the letters on the aircraft's side, G-CARH, nor the
the shore.
year, 1928. That year, as I would later learn, a company
As darkness gathered neither Dad nor the pilot
called Northern Aerial Mineral Exploration had
seemed perturbed. It had been Dad's first flight and
chartered several aircraft and sent them prospecting for
FLYIN bishop" with a Catholic monseigneur. In any
gold as far north as Rankin Inlet.
flying
mine too, obviously. Later, he would share the title "the
The pilot was cast in the mould of men like "Punch"
event, / was perturbed. I nibbled at my share of a tin of
Dickins, the consummate bush pilot. A lean man with a
sardines and a few hard tack biscuits. I could picture the
birdlike head, he seemed the epitome of alertness,
morrow: flying desperately southward until the gas ran
Flying alone and empty, he agreed to give us a lift down
out, coming down on another uncharted pond, a needle
to the end of steel, where the Hudson Bay Rail line
in a haystack, ears straining for the sound of a search
construction had currently halted. We would refuel at
plane, no radio communication, getting hungrier and
Deer Lake, the halfway point. Here the company
hungrier, trying to snare a few rabbits, the first snowfall,
maintained a small base with a shack and a pile of
watching the pilot die, then my father,
gasoline drums.
Next morning the sky held a low overcast that kept
Unfortunately, our pilot lost sight of the thin sliver
us prisoner. By noon the clouds began to break up,
that marked the railway right-of-way through the
however, and within an hour we were on our way again. 56
• Daylight in the Swamp • We sighted the HER right-of-way almost immediately,
prank. We landed in due course at the end of steel and
We followed it to the little air base at Deer Lake.
travelled by open gas car on the rails to Pikwitonei at
More than thirty years were to pass before I would ride in an airplane again. The Fairchild was the precursor of those two northern workhorses, the Beaver and the Otter. With floats in the summer and skis in the winter, these bush planes evolved, so to speak, in the Canadian Shield terrain. Because water (or ice) was ubiquitous, a dead-stick landing was possible everywhere within a mile or two. Over the last quarter century I've covered thousands of miles in such aircraft with nary a scare. We had just enough gas, as it turned out, to reach the Deer Lake base. That night, sleeping in the tiny warehouse, Dad and I awakened from time to time to the sounds of hilarious carousing by the pilot and some of the people who worked at the base. They whooped it up in the shack right next door to us. The following morning, as we circled to cruising altitude, the aircraft began to behave strangely. Whether the pilot did this as a farewell gesture to the personnel below or in a mischievous attempt to shake my father's imperturbability, I never found out. The nose of the plane tilted sharply down and the earth began to rise. Then it suddenly fell away only to twist into appearance again as the plane resumed its normal flight. I later learned to call this an Immelman turn. Dad remained completely calm throughout the performance. I too, tried to conceal my feelings, lest the pilot was pulling a
57
Mile 124, where we boarded the train for the comforts (and dull routines) of civilization,
This page intentionally left blank
chapter five
On the Edge of Another World
One June my father took me sixty miles down the Lake
Africa. However, when I learned how much time and
[of the Woods] to Neangoshing for the treaty gathering
money it took to become a doctor, I reduced my
where the drums beat a more authentic note. As I wandered
ambitions from the African jungle to the Canadian bush.
through the big encampment, watching and listening, I only
I would become a missionary to the Ojibway. In deciding
understood that I was on the edge of another world—
this, I was swayed by my growing fascination with bush
surrounded by strangers whose life fitted this wild, beautiful
travel and by romantic ideas of wanting to "help" the
land in a way that was closed to me.
native people. That brief glimpse of the Lake of the
They Shared to Survive, 1976
Woods Ojibway at Neangoshing doubled my interest. I even wished I could become an "Indian".
I was fifteen and had just completed my third year of
But native life had its dark side, from the drunks who
high school when I made the trip to Neangoshing. Since
loafed on Kenora streets to a strange event written
my Prince Albert days I had been fired by accounts of the
indelibly on my memory of those days. One evening my
African explorations of Stanley and of Livingstone.
chum Smitty and I were returning home by canoe at
Although visions of a career as an artist were gathering in
dusk. We passed a fishing boat that was clearly in trouble,
the back of my mind, the family missionary tradition
and we paddled over to investigate. The boat was hung up
remained foremost. I wanted to be a medical missionary
on a bedrock reef. Its sole occupant, a middle-aged
like Dr. Westgate, who had visited Prince Albert in 1919.
Ojibway, thrust his head through the broken windshield
From the pulpit of St. Alban's he had described his work
and shouted obscenities at us. Blood trickled down his
and sufferings in what was then German Southwest
neck from head and face wounds. We backed off, not 59
• Daylight in the Swamp • knowing what to do. When we spied an approaching
to wonder whether the church was the place for me when
launch, we stopped it to describe what we had seen.
Dad, as Bishop, offered me a summer job as student-in-
Because it was getting dark, we continued home, without
charge at the Lac Seul Mission. I jumped at the chance,
ever learning what happened after that.
not only because it would give me a taste of missionary
Besides Smitty, I had another chum, a native boy by
work, but because I had heard so much about Lac Seul as
the name of Cliff Sanderson. His father, the Reverend
a wilderness paradise. That was how it came about that I
Canon Maurice Sanderson, was a full-blooded Cree,
served two, long halcyon summers in the very heart of
raised on a Salteaux reservation in southern Manitoba.
"God's country," in 1929 and 1930. Canon Sanderson,
Canon Sanderson was a veteran churchman, with charge
moreover, would be my supervisor.
over all the missionary work in the southern part of the
Before it was flooded for a hydro dam in 1931, Lac
Diocese of Keewatin. Out rabbit hunting with Cliff one
Seul had been a crescent-shaped enlargement of the
fall, I was shocked to hear him refer to natives as "they".
English River, some one hundred and twenty miles long
In his own mind, he seemed to have crossed the fence
but rarely more than a mile across. The water flowed
that divided his ancestral culture from that of the
imperceptibly west, then northwest, cascaded over Ear
European settlers. This in spite of his broad cheekbones,
Falls, and ultimately joined the Winnipeg River. Halfway
black hair, and strong, dark face that I frankly envied,
along the southern shore a band of Ojibway had their
There could be even less doubt about his father's ancestry,
summer camp on a site they had originally chosen in
I had often heard Maurice Sanderson preach in English in
1873 (Treaty Number 3) as a reservation in lieu of their
the Kenora church but the first speech I heard him give in
land claims. The Hudson's Bay Company had not been
Ojibway opened a new world of oratory for me. It was at
slow to establish a fur post on the opposite shore and, by
the Treaty Assembly at Frenchman's Head in 1930, which
the early 1900s, the Anglicans had set up a thriving
I will come to in a moment.
mission on the same site. Although the Lac Seul Ojibway
In the fall of 1928, after the journey to Big Trout with
had signed their treaty with the new Canadian
Dad, I returned to Wycliffe College at the University of
government much earlier than other bands, such as the
Toronto for my second year in residence. Continuing the
one at Big Trout Lake, they had been almost as isolated up
missionary tradition of my father and eldest brother, I
to the point of my arrival.
planned to continue my BA program, then to follow up
By sheer happenstance I was to spend two long
with the courses offered at Wycliffe that would qualify me
summers at the right historical moment to witness events
for ordination in the church. But I was already beginning
that would change the Lac Seul people forever. History is 60
• Daylight in the Swamp • now. The Canadian Pacific Railway, completed in 1885,
pruning had cleared their lower trunks of branches. The
passed too far to the south of Lac Seul to have much
lusty foliage of the pines plus the thick carpet of needles
impact on the community. But in the first decade of the
they dropped had completely eliminated undergrowth to
new century, the Canadian Northern Railway (later
offer clear glades in all directions. Apart from a marginal
incorporated into the CNR) gave direct access to Lac Seul
farm a few miles to the east, the only buildings on the
waters at a stop called Hudson. In the mid-1920s gold was
shore were the mission and the post. Further back from
discovered at Red Lake, northwest of Lac Seul. The rush
the shore, three log houses that would soon be
of men and materials into Hudson, then off by boat to
demolished presently housed a carpenter, a handyman, a
Red Lake, set in motion profound changes that took place
labourer and their families, all from the reserve. Here was
under my very nose during the two summers of my
a living symbol of decline and a reminder that history is
tenure. For example, the gold rush created many jobs.
now. At one time, the Lac Seul post had been the most
Young men from the reserves worked seasonally on
active and lucrative in the whole region. Now the
survey crews, construction projects, prospecting parties.
Hudson's Bay Company was in the process of transferring
They worked as guides, rodmen, and general labourers. At
its investment from a dying fur trade to a thriving retail
the same time, the rush of "progress" demanded a hydro
business in Hudson.
dam at Ear Falls, the outlet of Lac Seul. The dam alone
The boat dropped me at the dock by the post: two
would bring profound changes to the geography of the
sturdily-built squared-log buildings, a warehouse and a
lake and the lifestyle of its aboriginal inhabitants. In the
store. There I was met by an ageing example of the
midst of all of this historical change, I would be a student
English Gentleman. He had white hair, faded blue eyes,
missionary. I was to hold services at Lac Seul Post and at
and no hat. He was immaculately dressed in an old
Hudson on alternate Sundays.
hunting jacket with trousers to match. Mr. Aldous. I
So it was that early in the summer of 1929 the
never did learn his first name and I would never have
passenger boat from Hudson to Red Lake dropped me at
dared use it if I had known it. A veteran of the Company,
Lac Seul Post. Situated on a flat, sandy point, the post
with years of experience in the fur trade, he spoke fluent
featured a beach that extended nearly a mile eastward,
Ojibway and had two apprentices in training, a relative
ending at a rocky point where the mission church stood.
luxury. (The manager at Big Trout, for example, had only
The mission house occupied a rise above the beach,
one). One of the apprentices already spoke good Ojibway,
beside the church, and backed by a stand of white pine,
the other had newly arrived from Aberdeen, Scotland, the
the most beautiful I have ever seen anywhere. Natural
apparent source of most HBC managers and apprentices.
61
• Daylight in the Swamp • Mr. Aldous invited me to his house for tea where I met
and warehouse. The latter was piled and hung with the
his only other employee besides the apprentices, an
cured pelts of every fur-bearing animal that had any
Englishwoman who kept his house. Hardly younger than
market value. I remember particularly some wolf skins,
Aldous, she had dark hair and always called her employer
including a beautiful black one with luxuriant fur. A
"Mr. Aldous". The two were most hospitable and
pleasant, musky odour filled the air. The rest of the
extended a standing invitation to afternoon tea in the
warehouse was filled with merchandise, of course, from
manager's residence. Their old country politeness, along
fishing gear to printed cotton to canned fruit.
with certain other features, gave the post an air of unreality.
Next, Aldous took me to the old mission house along a ten-minute walk through those magnificent pine glades.
For example, when Aldous first came to Canada, he
The path was well trodden. I was soon to learn that I
had brought with him an ancient set of golf clubs. On
could follow it with my feet on the darkest night. The
arriving at Lac Seul, he had wasted no time in laying out a
mission house had the same general design as the two-
golf course on the sandy, weed-grown flats. The course
storeyed post manager's residence. Built of hand-hewn
had three holes which were not at all easy to locate in the
beams and faced over with whipsawed planks, it was cool
tall, scanty grasses. He would play nine holes by going
and roomy within, even on the hottest summer days. It
around the course three times. An eighteen-hole game
had four bedrooms upstairs, a kitchen, a hallway, and a
was more or less out of the question because of the time
large front room downstairs. The front door gave onto a
it took to locate stray golf balls. I was to serve a double
long, open, roofed veranda that faced west in the
apprenticeship that summer: as a student lay minister and
direction of the post.
as a golfer. In the latter role I discovered a certain facility
The front room was the site of winter services for the
for whacking the ball off into the blue. Consequently, we
few native people who remained at the Lac Seul
spent more time looking for my strays than anyone else's.
community after most had departed for their family trap
I was destined never to become a star player, however.
lines miles away in the bush. The house itself provided
Aldous departed that fall for a new posting to Osnaburgh
ample room for the incumbent missionary, his wife and
House*, clubs and all.
family. In fact, Maurice Sanderson had been the last full-
After tea, Mr. Aldous took me through the post store
time missionary. His wife and children had spent winters
*The Hudson's Bay Company post on Lake St Joseph at the head of the Albany River.
62
• Daylight in the Swamp • in Kenora so that his four sons and one daughter could
guiding, fishing, freighting, and trapping. I would get to
get an adequate education. But the family would return in
know Lester later and visit him a few times to be
the summers, using the mission house as a kind of resort.
entertained by his Whiskey Jack (Ousikaychak) stories.
The fact that I was the first summer student
(Again, how I wish I had written them down!)
incumbent illustrated the impact the gold rush was
Lester also kept kept horses. I had no idea at the time,
having on the Lac Seul community. Most of the younger
and it took me a while to realize, that Lester permitted
trappers found they could earn more as summer guides
them to wander where they would, when they would.
for prospectors, so many young families moved to where
One night not long after I moved in, I awoke to the sound
the action was, in Hudson or at Gold Pines at the west
of alarmingly heavy footsteps on the mission house
end of the lake. They moved as far as Red Lake where a
veranda. It sounded like really big men! Investigating, I
shortage of labour had developed following discoveries
was shocked (and relieved) to see Lester's horses. They
that were even more promising than the original Howey
had stopped to pay a courtesy call on their way to the
Development.
post garden where they hoped to dine on Mr. Aldous's
I got used to living in the mission house, cooking my
cabbage and lettuce.
own meals and doing my own laundry on an ancient hand-
Shortly after I arrived, I found the mission canoe. My
operated machine. I chopped my own wood for the kitchen
delight at this discovery, an almost new, canvas-covered,
stove, swept the house at infrequent intervals, and prepared
fifteen-foot chestnut canoe, needs no explanation. Often,
sermons for the two services that I gave in Hudson every
when no other duties pressed me, I would take the
other Sunday. (How I wish I'd hung onto a few of those
chestnut out on the lake. It still gives me a moment of
sermons!) I still found time to read most of the dog-eared
heartache to recall the view of the post from the lake, its
books left behind by the Sandersons and even to turn my
whitewashed walls and red roofs against that magnificent
hand to writing verse. There was swimming, of course, and
stand of white pine. I remember most vividly the scene
failing all else, I could always stroll over to the Post to find
one hot, calm day in early August when I had paddled up
someone for a few holes of golf.
the lake some fifteen miles, then looked back. A heat
I lived alone in the old mission house. Apart from
mirage suspended the miniature post buildings in mid-
Aldous and the HBC employees, my only other
air. Often from such distances I had seen the post
neighbour lived a mile down the shore to the east. Lester
buildings hovering just above the horizon in a heat
Vincent, of mixed ancestry, had lost an arm in World
mirage. But now the image was accompanied by its
War I and now supplemented his veteran's pension by
double, hanging upside down below it!
63
• Daylight in the Swamp • I had the perfect excuse for longer trips. In fact, I
point for Ear Falls, and above all, the Red Lake mining
would routinely take a forty mile trip by canoe to Hudson
settlement. I would have to maintain the bimonthly
and back. It was just over twenty miles by water and
commitment in Hudson, but in the intervening
three portages to Hudson. Travelling light, I made
two weeks I was as free as a bird.
the trip in about seven hours. A few diesel-
I also made a point of paddling across the
powered freight and passenger boats plied the
lake every week to the Lac Seul Ojibway village, a
lake, passing the mission and trading
sort of goodwill visit. I cannot properly call them
post once or twice a day. The all-
parishioners because many of them still kept to
water route they were forced to*
the aboriginal religion and oral traditions. My
follow to Hudson was nearl/
visit always began, as I tied up my canoe and
three times as long as the
climbed the bank, with a barrage of snarls,
one I followed.
growls and fierce barks from the sleigh
I found another use for
dogs. Although the people kept them
the canoe when the blueberry
tied, how was I to know when the
season opened in mid-July,
leash would finally pull
my Lac Seul
^ ^^"^WSLII^ 4 t
congregation vanishec
waykal
and
like snow in the spring.
kept a discreet distance
Everyone was off berry-picking. I could
from me, not wishing to offend
have continued holding my Sunday
tribal conservatives. At the same time, those
services at Lac Seul with two or three old
who kept to the old ways understood very well
people and a grandchild or two from
that the Church condemned all vestiges of
across the lake. What a lift it gave me to
"paganism". I ended by being acutely
realize that to pursue my duties
uncomfortable all round on such visits. Perhaps
conscientiously, I should go where the
the only good to come from them for me was
people went! The idea opened up the
the photograph I took one day of an aged
prospect of a whole series of canoe
shaman named Go-to-pat. I persuaded him
trips to a dozen camps, paddling solo to
F i g u r e 1 2, U n t i t l e d
all of them, including Gold Pines, the freight transfer
to pose for my vest-pocket camera and, a
few years later, I made a lino-block image from the photo.
64
• Daylight in the Swamp • The mission canoe added the element of freedom to
Edwards, a doctor from Kenora, his assistant, a clerk, and
my summers at Lac Seul. At any time I had no duties, I
an RCMP constable. Canon Sanderson was also there,
might take it out for a paddle, not the long trips to
representing the Church.
Hudson or to the berry-pickers' camps, but little jaunts
On Sunday morning Sanderson addressed the
away from the mission and post. I would even take the
assembled bands and I experienced for the first time the
canoe out after dark. If you have ever paddled at night
full flavour of his oratory. In that outdoor setting, the
down a still channel that echoes with the flutes of loons,
people sitting on the ground, it took little imagination to
your paddle dipping and thrusting the craft with
be transported back in time and to feel again, as I had at
unconscious ease, the quiet drip of the paddle as it lifts
Neangoshing, that I was on the edge of another world.
from the water and slips quietly in for the next stroke,
His mastery of the mother tongue, the sonorous dignity
you'll know what I was after.
of his voice, the flashing eyes, eloquent gestures, musical
Just east of Hudson lay the town of Sioux Lookout.
cadences, and dramatic pauses left me in no doubt about
Although a river connected this town of a few thousand
the power of the man. It was reflected in the rapt silence
to the Lac Seul waterway, a falls blocked easy access. Later,
of that audience. I, as an outsider, understood but little of
as bush airlines came into their own, Sioux Lookout
his speech. I sensed how wide and deep was the cultural
would become the jumping-off point for the whole
gap that separated me from the native people. Only
Patricia District. But for now, Hudson was the focus of
Sanderson could span it.
gold rush transportation. A sawmill in Hudson that
The rest of the treaty gathering, concerning the
provided lumber for the Red Lake development brings
annual payment of timber duties and a medical
me to the treaty gathering.
checkup, amounted to a descent from the sublime.
Logs for the mill were cut on nearby reservation lands
Typical Indian Affairs agents were World War I veterans
on the basis of a lease arranged between the Lac Seul
and Captain Edwards was no exception. He had also
Ojibway and the federal government. Fees payable on the
been Boy Scout Commissioner for the Kenora District
lease went through the Indian Affairs branch and were
and I knew him well from that time. As "troop leader" I
paid at the annual treaty gatherings. I can't recall the 1929
had to run the Kenora troop during our scoutmaster's
gathering but I was present as a fascinated witness in
frequent alcoholic lapses.
1930 when several Ojibway bands camped for a few days at Frenchman's Head. The treaty party consisted of the Indian agent Captain 65
Edwards and his clerk had set up a large wall tent with the Canadian ensign waving more or less proudly in the breeze outside. The men of the bands lined up to receive
• Daylight in the Swamp • their payments, five dollars for every member of their
George reaches into the only other visible carton and
families. Those from the local band received an additional
takes out a bottle of green liquid and hands it to the
timber fee of $7.50. A pregnant woman added a touch of
woman.
drama to the camp. Would her baby arrive in time to qualify for another head payment? Meanwhile, another lineup at the doctor's tent would have been comical if it weren't so medically monstrous, The medical assistant, a man named George, stood beside a huge supply of cough syrup. Tuberculosis, then
"Give your little one a teaspoonful whenever it cries, Next!" But the woman hesitates, says something in a low voice. "George. Give her a bottle of the cough medicine, too."
endemic, was the feared killer. It took the largest toll on
Everyone who came to the medical tent came away
infants, but even young adults came down with it. The
with something. Some grinned, other wore impassive
doctor examined each patient in turn, listening intently to
faces. I saw one man stop a few yards from the tent,
their rudimentary English through the coughing noises
uncork his bottle and take a hearty swig. He passed the
that came from the line. The following scene was typical:
bottle to a friend who gulped down the balance, then
A big man stands at the head of the line, the doctor looks up questioningly. The man thumps his chest with vigour, managing just two words of English.
both went off, giggling. No doubt the syrup had an alcoholic content. This reminds me of a problem that would occur during the
"Hurt. Much hurt".
priestly dispensation of wine during Holy Communion at
"Okay. Give him some cough medicine, George".
mission services. All too frequently, communicants would
George reaches into the carton and pulls out a bottle
take the communion goblet in their hands and drain the
of yellow fluid. He hands it to the patient. The doctor
contents with one gulp. Priests became accustomed to
holds up three fingers and points to the sun.
watering the wine and filling only the bottom of the
"Three times a day".
goblet. But this meant more frequent consecrations of the
The big man grins, shoves the bottle in his pants pocket
wine, more frequent pretastings by the priest and,
and makes way for the next patient. She is a thin, weary-
undoubtedly, some cumulative effect on his ability to
looking woman holding a baby. Obviously both are sick,
conduct a sober service. It strikes me now that the Roman
The baby cries feebly. The doctor stands up to look closely
Catholic practice of giving out only wafers and sipping
at the baby, then puts a stethoscope to its chest.
only symbolically makes a lot of sense.
"Give her a bottle of the infant remedy, George."
In the late 1920s and early 1930s, prohibition was in
66
• Daylight in the Swamp • full force. The only legal sources of alcohol were
That afternoon, Johnny Shortback, a big man over six
pharmaceutical preparations and communion wine,
feet tall and broad in proportion, came into the Hudson's
Bootleggers had easy access to Hudson, but there was no
Bay store while I was buying an item or two. Only a few
way they could set up business at Lac Seul. Camping
weeks earlier I had seen a snapshot of him loaded with
anywhere in the vicinity of the reserve would have made
eight ninety-eight-pound bags of flour. He had carried
them far too conspicuous. In fact, although drunks were
the load over a three mile portage without stopping. Now,
common enough in Hudson, I never encountered any
he was not merely under the influence, as they say, but
native person, on or off the reservation, drunk outside
drunk. And angry!
the town.
Besides the store clerk I was the only object on which
I'm still haunted by the memory of a visit to Hudson
he could vent his wrath. He greeted me with a diatribe
that coincided with the arrival of the last fur brigade to
against my race in general and advanced in a menacing
arrive by canoe from Osnaburgh House, a post some sixty
fashion. This prompted me to retreat at the same rate
miles to the northeast.
until I felt the store counter at my back. Fixing my eyes
They came in a flotilla of seventeen-foot freight canoes
firmly on his, I hoisted myself up on the counter thereby
loaded with bales of fur that would be shipped first to
becoming a head taller and overcoming his height
Montreal by rail, then to England by sea for the London
advantage. The abuse now reached a peak but no violence
fur auctions. The brigade arrived shortly after I did one
followed. Woods, the store manager, came in at this point.
Saturday morning, twenty men or more. The Hudson's
After Shortback walked out, I asked Woods why the
Bay clerk paid them all off and they disappeared.
Mounties hadn't arrested the bootlegger. After all, this
As darkness fell that evening, they reappeared,
was prohibition and it was illegal to sell liquor anywhere.
Evidently, they had visited the bootlegger's shack which,
Woods explained that no arrests could be made until
as everyone knew, lay just over the hill. By the next
someone laid charges. As local magistrate he had all the
morning the railroad right of way was littered with men
requisite legal forms. Lacking any direct evidence, he had
who had passed out overnight. Mr. Woods, the Hudson
nothing to charge the bootlegger with. So, why didn't I
HBC manager, was bitter about the money which the
charge Johnny Shortback? That way, the Mounties would
bootlegger had diverted from his store. But he could (or
have somewhere to start. I declined. A few weeks later I
would) do little about it. I found myself in a state of
learned that Johnny was in jail in Kenora. The bootlegger
moral outrage. Where were the mounties? Why didn't
had vanished as soon as the Mounties showed up in
somebody do something?
Hudson. So much for my first (and last) attempt to deal
67
• Daylight in the Swamp • with the "Indian liquor problem". It would be many years
her to 'fuck off1.' Finally, he went over to the newly arrived
before I would understand that alcohol was exactly the
young missionary's tent for company, and to escape the
wrong drink to mix with a society that had developed its
friendly female.
emotional discipline based on survival values such as
The woman followed him in and sat down. So Bert
sharing. Alcohol had a disastrous effect on these controls.
explained her needs to the young missionary on whom
As a representative of the Church, I had to discourage
she was now casting longing eyes. The missionary was
drinking wherever I found it, even when it meant going
now so upset that he got down on his knees and prayed
against my own humanity. One afternoon I was
the Lord to be delivered from temptation! She finally left."
conducting an open air service over at Frenchman's Head
Almost from the day of my arrival at Lac Seul I began
when the women suddenly melted into the bush with
work on an Ojibway dictionary, determined to learn the
their children. I turned (attired in surplice and cassock)
language. In a few weeks I began to include words and
to face a man, ugly drunk, emerging from a nearby tent.
phrases in the native language with English sentences that
With all the aplomb of an empire-builder facing the
I made meticulously direct and simple for my
threat of "lesser breeds without the law" (to quote
congregation. Whenever my supervisor, Canon
Kipling), I stared him down. But it sickens me now to
Sanderson, visited, he tutored me in reading the Ojibway
recall how readily I could assume the moral arrogance of
prayers and service from printed phonetics based on the
my race.
system devised by the missionary James Evans a century
On the other hand, there were problems of a different
earlier. Although it applied equally to all native tongues,
sort that churchmen sometimes had to face. I was
including Cree and Ojibway, it would be another decade
thankful never to be exposed to the trial of a certain
before the Lac Seul people would begin to use it.
young missionary in the Manitoba hinterland. The
Meanwhile, the Big Trout community had long been
incident was described for me by Bert, a veteran
familiar with the system.
northerner reminiscing about his days as a young
As I mentioned previously, there was a major religious
Hudson's Bay employee sent to buy fur from a small,
difference between the two communities. While the Trout
isolated band. To quote from my diary of the time:
Lake community had totally converted to Christianity,
"The women of the band had watched his arrival with
the Lac Seul band remained "pagan" in official Church
a lively interest: 'Which of us will he choose to sleep
terminology. Further south again, the Lake of the Woods
with?' Bert put up a tent and one of the younger women
people still practised traditional rituals, from healing rites
kept putting her head in the tent while Bert kept yelling at
to destructive sorcery, in spite of two centuries' exposure
68
• Daylight in the Swamp • to missionary endeavours. As I pointed out in The Sacred
expected to eat the flesh of a white dog? Fears and
Scrolls of the Southern Ojibway, it was the Midaywaywin
objections multiplied to the point of paralysis. I could not
Society, with its four degrees of initiation, that
know that this was to be the last such ceremony.
encouraged these practices and it was the Midaywaywin society that preserved Ojibway identity.
Things were changing fast for the Lac Seul and other Ojibway bands. Soon, the Midaywaywin would be largely
The Midaywaywin, misnamed the "Grand Medicine
abandoning their practices, and giving away or throwing
Society" developed along the south shore of Lake
out priceless ritual objects. I was to come by a few of
Superior in the early 1700s. It came to maturity in the
them in later life when I had developed a professional
village of Leech Lake in northern Minnesota, then spread
interest in the subject of Midaywaywin scrolls*. Strangely
far and wide from there into adjacent Canada. In the
enough, it was a young member of my Lac Seul
process, it lost much of its classical form and took on new
congregation, a lad by the name of Dean Starrat, who
rituals and practices that derived from the visionary life
developed a small collection of his own. Forty years later,
of local practitioners. New Miday centres emerged in
I met him again in Hudson where he ran a small but
Manitoba and Northwestern Ontario and their annual
prosperous local air service. I was astounded to learn that
initiation ceremonies attracted bands from afar. Usually
he had a Miday master scroll in his collection. But
held in June, the two largest ceremonies were held at
Starrat's find was nothing compared to the bonanza
Berens River and Lac Seul. These ceremonies culminated
reaped by Irving Hallowell, an ethnologist funded by the
in the Feast of the White Dog.
Heye Foundation in New York.
I'll never cease regretting that I did not attend the
In 1930, when the dam at Ear's Falls was completed,
ceremonies. Night after night during that first June at Lac
Lac Seul's outlet was closed off and lake levels rose. The
Seul I went to sleep to the sound of drumming from the
subsequent flooding wiped out the village site and
reserve. In those days I knew nothing of the
destroyed the rice beds that had provided a substantial
Midaywaywin. Moreover, I represented the Church and
part of the Lac Seul band's food supply. Pressure on the
the Church rejected all native religion. Would they not
Ojibway
reject me? I knew only the name of the feast. Would I be
"development" throughout northwest Ontario and
people
from
white
settlement
and
^Scrolls made from birchbark panels sewn together with cedar roots and covered with symbolic diagrams portraying one aspect or another of initiation rites.
69
• Daylight in the Swamp • eastern Manitoba had never been more destructive.
common to hear the name pronounced "Ojibwa" in
Perhaps this is why the people who lived along the Berens
Canada and "Chippewa" in the northern United States.
River, just to the north of Lac Seul and extending all the
Curiously, I know of no aboriginal name, from "Ottaway"
way to Lake Winnipeg, had begun to lose faith in their
to "loway" that hasn't had the "y" removed and its
traditional medicine. In any event, Hallowell visited the
pronunciation changed. For further information about
port of Berens River on Lake Winnipeg just as the
the Ojibway language, see Sacred Scrolls of the Southern
Midaywaywin Society was dying. Local practitioners were
Ojibway.
discarding their ceremonial equipment. Hallowell came into an astounding collection of magical medicine bags that included the skins of song birds (even humming birds) and every sort of larger animal. He also purchased or was given the largest collection of birchbark scrolls. These would later make it possible for me to trace the Midaywaywin Society back to its ancestral home in Leech Lake, Minnesota. The Name "Ojibway" Sources differ about the origin of the word "Ojibway". For example, the anthropologist Diamond Jenness called them "People of the puckered moccasin" thinking that "Ojibway" referred to the Ojibway practice of stitching their moccasins into a rawhide pucker around the toe. But the name surely originates in their history: in the nineteenth century certain bands had travelled westward along the South shore of Lake Superior under pressure from the Iroquois of the lower Great Lakes. Led by the Whooping Crane clan, they adopted its name: "Ochibweh", literally "voice of the crane". Today it is very 70
chapter six
Lac
Seu I
Sagas
Saturday was even more strenuous for a storm we had
In retrospect, I think my two long summers at Lac
the other day . . . the worst anyone who experienced it had
Seul were the happiest of my life. The long idyll of
ever seen . . . made a mess of the first portage . . . made a
peaceful summer days was punctuated from time to
regular corduroy road out of it.
time by adventures, which only fuelled my love for life
From a letter home, Hudson September 1 1929
in the bush. The storm I wrote home about illustrates the unpredictable and sometimes turbulent nature of my stay.
Figure 13, Untitled
It happened on a Wednesday. I saw the whole show from the mission house. It began with a weirdly lit dark grey ceiling and distant rumbles of thunder. Following this, a black roll of turbulence came overhead. I could feel the bottom drop out of the barometer as one end of the black roll dipped down, revolving vertically now, and skimmed over the trees on the far side of the lake. Then came the tronado-like wind that broke six windows in the mission house, and obliterated the landscape. I had almost forgotten the storm when I left the next Saturday morning for Hudson. The first portage was an easy quarter mile. Travelling light, with only my church 71
• Daylight in the Swamp • garments and suit coat in a knapsack that formed a pad
the grace of God that I didn't break a leg, or worse, as I
for my shoulders, I carried canoe and all, intending to
miraculously recovered my balance before tumbling,
make a single trip of it. Halfway over, I was suddenly
canoe and all, onto or through the hard trunks.
confronted with the work of the twister. Cutting across
Thus, a fifteen-minute portage took the better part of
the portage at right angles, it had laid a mature, forty foot
an hour. The reader may well ask, "Was that fun?" The
stand of white poplar like hail-flattened straw across the
answer is yes. That is part of the fun of bush travel.
portage trail.
Standing on firm ground again and looking back, I
The first prostrate tree I came to lay only a foot above
enjoyed the sense of achievement. Did I actually carry the
the ground so I stepped up on it. I saw two more a bit
canoe over all that deadfall? I stared in awe at the havoc
higher and stepped up again. When you carry a canoe on
behind me, the canoe still on my shoulders.
the level, the gunwales rest on your shoulders so that the
Normally that portage was a breeze. Beyond lay a two-
load is evenly balanced fore and aft, your hands extended
mile stretch of water, then a two-mile portage into a huge
forward so you can keep the balance steady. However, with
wild rice field. Passing that I would come to a bare
your head inside an inverted canoe, your vision is limited
headland, Frenchman's Head, where the government
to a few feet of the trail ahead. To see further, you must let
made annual treaty payments to a half dozen Ojibway
the bow swing upward and, of course, you can increase
bands. Beyond that was the carrying place, little more than
your range of vision even further by swinging the canoe
a lift over a narrow peninsula within sight of Hudson.
left or right. This is just what I was doing while balancing
There was joy then, in stretching my body to its limits,
somewhat precariously on the third prostrate trunk. I
finding what I could achieve by my own efforts. There
confronted a choice. The top trunk before me was waist
was no Everest, nothing deserving even a line in the local
high. Beyond and below I could catch a glimpse of
newspaper, only the satisfaction of having tested myself
ground. Before me the swathe of tree trunks piled higher
and met the challenge. Another such story is coming, but
and higher. Should I retreat or climb on? There was no
first, an illustration of what happened when I didn't
choice, no detour possible. I could have let the canoe
depend on myself. In this instance I weakly acquiesced to
down and slid it before me as I climbed but somehow it
a foolish scheme, accepting dependence on another
looked easier to go on climbing. Which I did. Somehow, I
man—and his machine.
carried the canoe while crawling, leaping and balancing to
In short, I allowed the HBC apprentice, Sandy
reach a high point a good twelve feet or more above the
Wraight, to attach his newly acquired one-and-a-half-
ground. Descending, my foot slipped and it was only by
horse-power motor to the mission canoe one Saturday. 72
• Daylight in the Swamp • He pleaded that he had urgent mail for Hudson: "I have
gleaming machine. On the other hand, I couldn't help
to get these letters on the train tonight!" I was planning to
thinking it was rather nice to have a machine doing the
go to Hudson anyway, so why not go together, my canoe
paddling for a change.
powered by his machine? The arrangement had all the
About two minutes later, the motor died. I had to dip
ingredients of a disaster; he knew nothing about canoes
my paddle continuously to keep the canoe straight while
and I knew nothing about motors.
Sandy pulled and pulled and pulled. Nearly an hour
With Wraight merely paddling bow and with single
passed before Sandy began to look a little frustrated.
trips over portages we could easily have cut at least one of
"Maybe she's flooded," I said for the sixth time. Sandy
my (normal) seven hours to Hudson. Thanks to the
gave me a dirty look, then began pulling again with more
machine and Wraight's perseverance, this trip took
energy than I thought he had in him. Then, suddenly, the
slightly over twenty-four hours! For one thing, Wraight
motor caught and away we went. For nearly a minute.
wanted to take the all-water route: "Sure, it's miles longer,
When the motor spluttered out, we glided on our briefly
but we'd save the time it would take to do the portages.
acquired momentum. The sound of waves lapping the
We might even make it to Hudson sooner."
canoe's bottom made the silence even more powerful.
The suggestion caught me by surprise. I had often
"Maybe you're choking her too much," I suggested.
thought about taking the longer route, even though it was
I was quite sincere but by this time Sandy's social
twice as long as the direct route made possible by the
facade began to disintegrate, with some paranoia just
portages. So, why not? It would be nice to make the trip
visible in the rents. His quick glance at me carried an
without portages for a change. Nevertheless, I cringed
implicit sneer. Then he went back, indefatigably back, to
when he began attaching his beloved motor to my
his pulling again. I imagined the starting cord wearing
beloved canoe. But the desecration proved possible, as he
out. I yearned to be quit of the whole adventure. Then, of
demonstrated by hitching the motor to one side of the
course, the motor started again.
canoe by a wooden frame. It was a perfect morning: clear
Soon we were going along at a good clip, at least half
sky with a moderate west wind. We had loaded up and
again as fast as my paddling pace, as we began to near the
pushed off at eight-o-clock, sure that we would make
first portage. Sandy was all smiles now. He shouted
Hudson before dark. The motor behaved beautifully,
something over the sound of the motor, pointed to it
starting on the second pull. I settled down in the bow,
triumphantly, then held up a pair of crossed fingers. He
feeling ambivalent. On one hand I had become a
shouted, "Which way do we go now?" I shouted back,
displaced person, robbed of my commanding role by a
"We've got to make a choice."
73
• Daylight in the Swamp • His eyes roamed the horizon and a frown marred the happy expression. "I don't see any buoys."
stern down uncomfortably close to the level of the lake. Water began to come in. Sandy doubtless saw the water
This was the one occasion on the whole trip that the
sloshing about his feet but set his chin stubbornly, as if he
machine would take an interest in the trip or show the
would keep the motor running even under water if
slightest response. It conked out. As we drifted, the wind
necessary. I finally prevailed on him to pull into shore,
took us eastward, instead of south, as we intended. I tried
where we dumped water out of the canoe, loaded, and set
to explain my thinking. Point A: We could continue our
out. It took perhaps half an hour to get the motor started
present stretch but we were almost at the first portage. It
and we were off again. But again we shipped water, went
was quite short and it would cut five miles off our
ashore to dump the canoe, and so on.
journey. B: I had noticed that the motor was kicking
Now we approached the second portage, the long one.
water into the canoe. The portage would enable us to
We went ashore to discuss the matter. Sandy felt weary
dump the canoe and to figure out a better way of
and discouraged. All our clothing was soaked and it was
attaching the motor. Sandy listened to all of this, his face
only one hour to sunset. On the other hand, the wind had
set in a dour mask.
dropped, easing the problem of constantly shipping
"No. She should start easily now." After five pulls on
water. Frankly, I was in no mood for a mile-long portage,
the starter cord with no response from the motor, he
carrying water-heavy gear. Why not take the long way
silently picked up his paddle. At the portage, I carried the
around after all?
canoe, Sandy the motor and we split the rest of the load to make it over in one carry.
An hour later the kicker quit again and refused to go any farther. There was no point in continuing. Although
On the other side of the portage we examined the way
the moon was full, the sky was overcast and we couldn't
the motor had been attached, decided that it had to go on
take the chance of shearing a pin on unseen rocks. We put
that way. We wound an old army issue blanket around the
into shore and, while Sandy pulled and pulled and pulled,
motor to stop water from spouting into the stern.
I made camp. Luckily, I had brought Dad's silk tent with
Now we were on a good three-mile stretch of the Canoe River with a lively west wind abeam. Miraculously,
me. We got the tent up just in time to get out of the rain. We spent the night under damp blankets.
the motor started on Sandy's first pull and we went gaily
The next morning, the kicker made a number of half-
along. The blanket was working fine although it was also
hearted attempts to start but I finally had to break the
getting thoroughly soaked. The combined weight of
bad news to Sandy. We would have to carry the motor in
Sandy, the motor and the wet blanket had brought the
the canoe, paddling it the last five or six miles to Hudson.
74
• Daylight in the Swamp • We limped into Hudson with my church clothes sopping
showed a creek that ran out of a small lake on the direct
wet, both of us foodless since the previous noon. I must
route. The creek passed so close to one of the lakes
confess that I felt a certain unholy pleasure that Wraight's
feeding into Route Lake that it seemed there must be
mail had missed the night train.
some sort of trail between the creek and the lake. And
I don't know what finally became of Sandy's motor
even if there wasn't one, I could easily cut a small portage
but he never suggested trying it on my canoe again. After
that would take me across. In any case the less direct
my delayed Church service in the village schoolhouse, I
route, by way of Route Bay and Route River, was nearly
took off for Lac Seul with just enough time to make it
twice as long,
before dark.
In fact, the shorter route looked almost as short as the
The episode that I recall with quiet satisfaction
trip to Hudson, with only two small portages. I started off
occurred during my second summer at Lac Seul. During
in mid-morning, expecting to be camping with my
both summers, I had enjoyed making canoe trips to
"flock" by nightfall. By noon I reached the small bay
mines and construction sites, to fishing camps and berry
shown on the map. It turned out to be more of a large
grounds. I did this without appealing to higher
swamp. But I found the mouth of my creek, winding and
authorities, all in the name of ministering to both native
quite deep, true to its kind. It closed up rather abruptly
people and whites, whichever seemed to be in greatest
when I reached the bush. This was a pity because it would
need of my ministrations at the time. I made the 120-
have been quite navigable if it weren't so choked up with
mile trip to Red Lake twice and had travelled by canoe to
deadfall and alders. No matter. I would chop my way
Gold Pines three times during my Lac Seul sojourn. But it
upstream, cutting through some of the trees, pushing the
was the much shorter trip to Route Lake that I must
canoe under or over the others. The flies were a bit on the
relate here.
thick and friendly side and it was sweaty and tiring work.
It was berry-picking time. I heard that there was a
However, when I stopped to measure my progress, I
magnificent crop just ripening near the CPR section stop
found Fd gone scarcely half a mile in two hours. Looking
at Millidge on Route Lake. It was attracting Ojibway
at the map, I thought I would encourage myself by hiking
families from as far away as Red Lake. What better excuse
over to the nearest ridge to get a look ahead. In half an
for a jaunt in my beloved canoe?
hour, stirring up more mosquitos as I went, I had climbed
My map, based on a 1906 river triangulation survey,
the ridge. I scanned the horizon to the southeast,
showed two possible canoe routes into Millidge. The
Nothing. No water in any direction except the gleam
more direct route had no portages marked but the map
of Lac Seul behind me. Returning to my map, I studied it
75
• Daylight in the Swamp • again. There must be a portage somewhere. Maybe I
Wearily I arose, repacked the canoe, untied it and
should look south of the creek. I made a half-hearted
paddled down the endlessly winding stream until I reached
foray into the bush on the other side. Meanwhile, I
the open lake. There was a nice little rocky island with a
realized the light was failing. Was it clouding over?
dimly discerned shelving shore. Again I tied up the canoe,
Overhead the sky was still clear. It couldn't be getting
spread a tarpaulin on the rock, and crawled under the dry
that late!
side of my sleeping robe. The night was clear and full of
Was it possible that I would have to camp in this hellhole? I wasn't crazy so I made my way out to the lake
stars. Promising myself to be under way again at the crack of dawn, I let sleep knit up the ravelled sleeve of care ...
again. It took less time, thanks to my previous axe-work,
Unfortunately, the sleeve began unravelling very soon.
but it was twilight by the time I reached the mouth of the
I awoke feeling little stabs of pain all over my body. The
creek and it would be dark by the time I got clear of the
moon was up. In its light I could make out a thousand
swamp. And I was hungry
ants playing Liliputians to my Gulliver. They evidently
Through the reeds I spied a rock outcrop. It shelved
resented the weight of my body on their doorstep. I
out of the water within easy reach and it hosted a small
staggered to my feet, brushing off the little demons only
clump of dead alders. I paddled through the reeds,
to find that some had jaws so firmly embedded in my
pulled the nose of the canoe up on the rock, leaving
flesh, they wouldn't let go! The whole island, it turned
enough room for a small fire. I made the fire from dry
out, was one huge anthill.
alder sticks then, having fed myself, settled down to
Wearily I paddled back down the lake whence I had
write a letter home by the light of the fire. When I
come earlier that day. That is, the previous day. The sky
finished the letter, it occurred to me then how much
was greying in the east when I reached the mission house
more comfortable I'd be if I spread my bedroll on the
and the solace of a dry and bugless bed.
bottom of the canoe. I would tie the canoe to the alders
Later that morning, I turned the canoe over to inspect
and let it float, gently rocking me to sleep in the cradle
it for leaks. There it was, a neat hole punched through
of the swamp.
canvas and hull alike by a small snag. It must have
This worked fine, as far as it went. In fact it went as far
happened on the return trip in my haste to get out of that
as two in the morning when I awakened feeling rather
damned creek. By evening the canoe was dry enough for a
cold in spite of the eiderdown sleeping blanket. I was
patch and a healing application of ambroid glue. Just then
particularly cold underneath. I reached under myself and
Hughes came around, enquiring in his polite English way
came to with a start. Water!
how the hole happened. 76
• Daylight in the Swamp • "I say, you're not going to try the other route." It was
I have ever gorged myself on. One small lake, another
a statement, not a question. "Not until the morning," I
brief portage, and I was out on Route Lake. I should have
told him.
paid more heed to some steep rock walls on my left, but
He stared at me to see whether I was serious. Deciding that I meant it after all, he said, "Well, all I can say is that
the white tents and ascending smoke of the berry-pickers' camp had caught my attention.
you've got a big heart!" (Although I didn't realize it at the
Johnny Akewance, the big warden of the mission
time, this was literally true. Much later in life I was to
church, came down to the shore, greeting me with, "Keen
learn that a bout of rheumatic fever as a child left me
tap'shkoo Ahnishinahbi!" ("You're just like an Indian!")
with a faulty valve and a heart that had enlarged to
That's when I learned that I was the only one that had
compensate.)
paddled in to Millidge. The others had all arrived by
I got up at the crack of dawn the next day and reached
railway flatcar from Hudson.
the falls at the mouth of Route River in less than three
I can't leave this story without mentioning the mad
hours. The portage was tricky. I had to haul the canoe up
trapper who had a cabin nearby and kept goats. As I
vertically from the water. Once on the portage, I found
cooked my supper over a campfire that evening, a billy
the trail dry and firm. I passed through glades of
goat, with a great leather shield as a birth control device,
jackpine, stopping only to refresh myself on the most
took a certain hostile interest in me. He pawed the
luscious aggregation of ripe, dew-cooled blueberries that
ground, looking as though he would charge me. I threw a Figure 1 4. Trapper's Cabin
77
• Daylight in the Swamp • stick or two at him to drive him off. Then he was back,
into the billy who took one look and fled. "Precipitately"
pawing the ground and looking more serious than ever,
would be the word.
He would advance a few paces as though working up to a
I held two services, one that evening, one the next
good charge, until I threw more sticks at him. But with
morning, then paddled and portaged my way back to the
each advance, the sticks did less and less to discourage the
mission house without further incident. But it took a
goat and he got closer and closer. In fact, he got so close,
good week to get the smell of that goat out of my clothes,
he couldn't even get a good run at me so I grabbed his hnrnc tn VinlH Viim off
In the next phase of this heroic encounter, we started going around in circles. He shoved and I kept trying to twist him sideways off his feet. Finding that this was impossible, I kept one hand on his horns and picked up my axe with the other hand. I began labouring him with the handle of the axe but this had no effect at all. Perhaps I should have banged him on the nose. As we went around and around in circles, I tried to talk nicely to the goat. Then I started yelling. I had almost reached the point of abandoning my pastoral role and begin swearing at him when I became aware that we had an audience. The whole band of berrypickers stood on the hill above us, watching. Possibly they made bets on who would win the struggle. They didn't laugh but appeared seriously absorbed in the whole performance. I was rescued when, either out of boredom or out of sympathy with my plight, a few men rushed down the hill toward us. One of them brandished a whip fashioned from a stick and numerous strands of telephone wire. It whistled viciously and obviously put the fear of the Lord
78
Daylight in the Swamp
F i g u r e 1 5, Hunter, 1938
79
This page intentionally left blank
chapter seven
The
Canoe
During my first summer at Lac Seul, I stood one day
happened had I not been watching the storm. She would
at the old mission house window, watching a storm
have been battered beyond recognition, an empty hull of
build up down the lake. My canoe was pulled well up
cracked ribs that some tourist operator would fill with
on the beach, some twenty feet from the shore.
earth and geraniums to grace his camp. The experience
Suddenly the water blackened ominously under the
burned deep. Forever after, whenever I came ashore in
impetus of a wicked-looking squall. Before I knew it the
any canoe, I would tie it to the nearest tree, bush or rock,
wind caught the canoe, rolled it over once, then once
oblivious to the raised eyebrows of any onlookers.
more. The wind took the canoe all the way to the water,
Not all canoes are equally worth saving, however. My
where by a miracle it landed upright. My relief turned
love for canoes has the same degree of generality as my
to horror when I saw the canoe go sailing, unmanned,
affection for women. I do not love them all equally.
toward the rocks at Church Point. It was like watching a
The best canoe rides the waves much like an Atlantic
child being hurled to destruction. At once I was out of
dory does. My birchbark canoe, for example, has a
the house, my feet flying with the wings of fear along
bottom that is subtly curved from stem to stern. When
the beach and toward the rocks where she would come
pointed into waves, it rocks into them, rather than
ashore. My canoe, of course, was utterly unconscious of
ploughing through them. Travelling with large waves, or
her peril. But I made it to the rocks just before the
into them, one is less likely to swamp. My favourite canoe
canoe did and pulled her safely out of the angry water,
was the fifteen-foot prospector type that I bought in
the wind whipping my hair.
Toronto in the early fifties. She had a keeless bottom and a nice full belly, just flat enough for shallow water, but not
My blood ran cold at the thought of what might have 81
Daylight in the Swamp
Figure 16, Studies of canoes
flat enough to slap down after a passing wave.
never seen a birchbark canoe, they come equipped with a
I have never been as fond of larger canoes. I did not
strip of foam rubber along either side to make them
particularly love the seventeen- foot freight canoe that
unsinkable. The only one I ever looked at closely drew
took Father and me to Big Trout Lake. Nor did I embrace
me, with all the horrifying fascination of a bad traffic
the twenty-two-footer that we rode to Hudson Bay on the
accident, to a hardware store window one day. I couldn't
same trip. Both canoes were designed for a maximum
take my eyes off it.
load and a minimum draught, workhorses of the North.
While venting my spleen, I must mention the
Finally, there are some canoes that I abhor. For
outboard motor, of course. The northern name for this
example, there is the "tin" canoe. This pejorative covers all
infernal machine, the kicker, came from an unpleasant
makes of metal canoes, whether of aluminum, galvanized
habit it had of kicking. It kicked when you started it,
iron, or sheet metal of any sort. Durable? Yes. Light?
giving one little bleat before remaining silent for the next
Sometimes. But just lay your paddle as gently as you
twenty pulls. And it kicked while it ran. These loathsome
please across the gunwales and the noise of ringing metal
machines first appeared in Kenora Bay in the mid-
will send all wildlife for miles around scurrying away,
twenties. Their buzzing echoed raucously over the bay,
Within this family of craft, there is no greater
stalling and restarting, muttering and dying. The only
abomination unto the Lord than the horrid tin boats that
pleasure they gave me was the sight of someone
appear every summer atop the cars of tourists. Painted
desperately pulling the starting cord as his craft neared
with a simulated birchbark pattern by someone who has
the rocks on a windy day. My loathing came to a head
82
• Daylight in the Swamp • when the first square-stern canoes appeared: the addition
lightness, and if you pack too much into it it begins to
of a transom had only one purpose, to accommodate an
behave like a heavier boat. If you happen to be headed
outboard motor. It threatens to quit just when you need it
into the waves, each wave crest (where the shipping water
most and has an unpleasant habit of bursting into flame
comes from) passes quickly so it hasn't much time to
when refuelling.
pour water over the gunwale. Heading away from the
Perhaps the worst feature of an outboard-powered
waves is more troublesome. A big following wave can give
boat is that it disconnected you from the environment.
you real trouble. On top of that, if passing you obliquely,
You hear nothing over the motor and you see little
it keeps you busy as you fight to stop it from slewing the
game. Worst of all, you never learned the subtleties of
canoe, which must be turned sideways just before or just
wind and wave.
after a large wave passes beneath.
The wind touches me in a way that no other element
Paddling into a stiff headwind is plain hard work.
can. Recall the sound it makes whistling through a
Here, a good heavy load can be an advantage because it
verandah screen on a hot August day as you watch the
helps keep up momentum between strokes of the paddle.
whitecaps out on the lake. Remember the roar it makes
Nothing is more disheartening, when fighting a head
threshing a stand of poplars by a portage, a roar easily
wind with a lightly loaded canoe, than the sudden
mistaken for a nearby falls.
arresting smack it makes just after a very big wave passes.
I have seen the wind, too, and felt it. I have seen it
It first picks up the bow then drops it abruptly into the
sweeping down the lake in catspaws and great
following trough, with a shock that brings your canoe to
blackenings. I have felt it gusting so strongly I could
an abrupt standstill, especially when helped by a sudden,
barely stand up and I have felt it blowing more gently
nicely timed gust of wind. You grit your teeth and build
than silk. I have smelled the freshness of the Keewatin,
up momentum all over again, knowing that the next big
that cool northern breeze that drives away cloying
wave could bring a fresh smack.
tropical air from the south. Wind makes waves and it becomes the business of any canoeist to learn about both. I have learned the hard way.
Out on a rough lake, you can make things easier for yourself if you watch the water. Sometimes what looks like a doozer of a wave suddenly slackens just before it
The riskiest situation for a canoe is travelling
arrives at your canoe. All waves do this, sooner or later. If
downwind, at an oblique angle to the direction of the
you follow any large wave with your eye, you will see it
waves, especially if you are heavily loaded and have little
slowly flatten and subside while the waves behind or in
freeboard. Part of the wave-worthiness of a canoe is its
front take up the slack. When a gust of wind is about to
83
• Daylight in the Swamp • bear down on you, it blackens and flattens the water only
the dominant ones. When the two kinds of waves meet,
to leave even larger waves in its wake. It also helps to
even larger waves may result.
picture the flow of wind in your mind. Shore contours
Between gusts and squalls there are lulls. In a fierce
have a big influence on the wind, even to the point of
head wind, it makes more sense to inch your way forward
changing its direction. For example, you may duck into
with a minimum of effort. Then, when the lull comes, put
the lee of a large island only to find that the wind follows
your back into the paddle and build some momentum for
you halfway around. Then, before you even emerge from
the next encounter. In a strong and continuous
the lee, you find yourself fighting a headwind! Even out
headwind, it's stupid to fight it up a long stretch. If there
on the open water, individual gusts of wind may vary in
are islands along your route, you can work your way from
direction by as much as ninety degrees. These gusts may
the lee of one to the lee of the next, almost like a game.
create smaller waves that travel in an oblique direction to
But in the absence of islands, it's wiser simply to go
Figure 17. Waves on Lake
84
• Daylight in the Swamp • ashore and wait for the wind to subside. Even a three-day
waves, you can keep the canoe absolutely stable in a
blow will slow down a bit in the late afternoon and
vertical plane, even as you ride up and down. I have
evening to give you a chance to make up lost miles.
argued with fellow canoeists about this manoeuvre. I
Island-hopping is a special skill that experience
maintain that it's safer to meet a big wave abeam if you
teaches. Unfortunately, islands are never lined up in neat
can keep the canoe vertical. That way, all parts of the
rows along your route, so you must zig-zag from one to
canoe have essentially the same amount of support, and
the next. This means that you will be travelling obliquely
there's no danger of one end going under or of shipping
to the waves. Watch them as you go and take the bigger
water from wave-crests.
ones head-on by swinging the canoe into the wind, then
It may happen that the wind favours your direction of
cut back toward the island before the next big wave
travel and a spell of tiredness falls over you. Or perhaps
comes. Here, you must avoid letting the wind catch the
you feel just plain lazy. Then it's time to make a sail. My
canoe, blowing it abeam and allowing the next roller to
first experience with canoe sailing, learned from a master,
hit you broadside. It's a good way to capsize unless you're
contains all the instruction you need. After our last
experienced. When the next big one comes, turn the
portage into Sachiago Lake on the the trip with Dad to
canoe into it again. Between large waves, there are
Big Trout, we found a stiff west wind blowing down its
sometime plateaus, as in a mountain range. If you watch
fifteen-mile length. Moses, our guide, seemed in no hurry
for these, you can sometimes avoid the big waves
to get started. Instead, he went into the bush to cut down
altogether, at least for a while, as you move from one
a small dead spruce which he trimmed to a light,
plateau to the next.
eighteen-foot pole. This puzzled me. Then he took one of
What happens if a big wave comes to you abeam? A
our canoe poles, used for pushing upstream, and tapered
little practice with smaller waves will show you how to
the butt end with his axe. Mystifying me further, he tied a
use your paddle to keep the canoe stable. Hold your
cord around the longer pole two or three feet from its
paddle vertically in the water with its blade parallel to
butt end and knotted it twice, leaving a loop barely big
the canoe for maximum leverage. When the big wave
enough to shove a thumb through. I still couldn't figure
begins to lift the craft, it will tilt you away from it, as on
what he was about. Next he spread our largest tarpaulin
the side of a hill. Pull the blade of the paddle in the same
(about twelve by fifteen feet) on a flat rock, laid the the
direction the wave is travelling, putting all your weight
freshly cut pole along one of its long sides with the
into it. On the downhill side of the wave, work the
knotted rope on one corner. By the time he laid the canoe
paddle in the opposite direction. With any but the largest
pole diagonally across the sheet so that the tapered end
85
• Daylight in the Swamp • met the knot, I recognized what the contraption was
following wave wave lifted us on its crest to balance the
becoming—a sail!
canoe briefly amidships. Although we were heavily
He fitted the tapered end of the short pole through the
enough laden to prevent waves from lifting us that much,
loop, then tied the other end to the third corner of the
I got a bit nervous at the end of the lake where the waves
tarp. It had become a spar. He tied the tarp to the top of
were big enough to slop over the gunwale from time to
the long pole, now a mast, and tied a rope to the fourth
time. In any event, Moses steered a course that kept us
corner, completing the rig.
close to the south shore of the lake so that we could land
He carried the whole assembly to the canoe to fit the
quickly if we got into trouble.
butt of the mast into the vee of the bow, at the bottom,
I had sailed in a canoe only once before this. A few
just behind the nose. He secured the mast to the bow
years earlier in Kenora, my brother Albert devised a
gunwales with rope, we loaded the canoe and were off. As handmade sail, mast and lee-boards to fit the family we paddled away from the shore, the wind came fitfully canoe. With a bit of practice and the right sort of wind, and the sail filled and slackened. I could see now why
you could tack two or three degrees upwind. In place of a
Moses had attached the spar to the mast by a loop,
keel the two lee-boards, one on either side of the canoe
Whenever the wind shifted, the sail could swing without
just ahead of the mid-ship thwart, kept the canoe on
getting twisted around the mast.
course. I can recall using this rig to cross Kenora Bay to
At last we were out in the wind and the sail billowed bravely out. We all took up comfortable positions on or
the fish market. The wind blew at right angles to my course so I sailed all the way in both directions,
among the baggage, all except Moses, that is. He sat in the
You can't quite do this in a northern rig like the one
stern, steering with his paddle, the rope from the spar-
Moses devised. Even if you have a keel (which no true
end wrapped about his paddle at the pivot point. We canoe would tolerate), it's far too shallow to prevent moved along briskly in the breeze. It was an ideal day for
drifting to the lee when you tack into the wind. But with
canoe sailing. The sky was clear and the wind, though
a lively wind behind, you can zip along at seven or eight
steady was not so strong that accumulating waves reached
knots and still hold the wind in your sail if you want to
dangerous proportions as we made our way down the
quarter to port or to starboard.
lake. Moses had loaded the canoe so she was lighter in the
The trickiest bit of sailing I ever did in a canoe was on
bow. If he had not done this, the downward pressure of
Lac Seul. I had used the sail to good effect on the way up
the mast would have driven the bow dangerously low, and
to the mining community of Red Lake, enjoying a
we would have found ourselves slewing badly when a
succession of fine August days. The second day out I was
86
Daylight in the Swamp greeted by a fine southwest wind, which I took advantage
animal trying to evade the wind by rocking from side to
of by going ashore and fashioning a sail in the style of
side. The gyrations thoroughly alarmed me. There was no
Moses the year before. It was a steady breeze, and with my
question of crawling forward to take down the mast. I
armstrong engine (my Dad's term for the human arm)
would be swamped in a second. Instead, I did the only
supplementing the sail, I enjoyed a good seven or eight
sensible thing I could do. I let go of the spar-rope. In
knots of speed. That was on a Friday.
seconds the entire sail swung out ahead of the mast to
The following Monday, I was on my way back to the mission on Lac Seul. I had broken my camp at dawn and
flap there like a huge canvas flag. It was still all I could do to keep from capsizing.
set out along Lac Seul, now heading east. There was a
The wind was taking me straight toward the island,
long stretch ahead of me terminated by an island that
now a mere half- mile away. I could see the spray on its
straddled the lake, creating a double narrows at the end.
rocky shore. I decided to make for the narrows on the left.
Again a wind came up and I relished the thought of
For every five or six yards I drifted helplessly before the
making the stretch into an easy sail. I rigged a new sail
wind, I tried to work the canoe a yard to the left. I used all
which bellied out magnificently in the following wind.
the techniques described above.
Halfway down the eight-mile stretch, the waves were
When I looked back, if I saw a gust of wind blackening
getting to be a fair size but I was enjoying my sail. Then
the water, I would swing the canoe downwind until it
the wind got even stronger.
roared past me. Then I would turn the canoe to the left,
If this keeps up, I told myself, it would be easy enough
watching the while for large waves to dodge or plateaus to
to swing the bow into the wind, then climb forward to
aim for. When another gust came, I would straighten the
yank the mast out. The wind would then blow the sail flat
canoe out again. When I finally came to the rocks, I
along the canoe without even wetting it. I could then turn
missed them narrowly, quickly took refuge in the lee of
the canoe broadside to the waves and paddle for the
the island, and dismantled the sailing rig. I'd had enough
shore, stabilizing the canoe (in the manner I described
for one day. Downwind from the island the waves were
earlier) whenever a particularly big roller came along.
reasonable again and I paddled all the way to the mission,
Man proposes, God disposes. Two miles from the narrows, the wind began to gust badly and a certain
almost enjoying the way following waves would pick up the canoe and almost carry it a few feet.
defect in my rig became apparent. Each time a gust bore
Shortly after this experience, I met a short, wiry man
down on me, the spar would swing up toward the mast,
in Hudson with whom I got talking about canoeing in
spilling the sail. The rig reminded me of a desperate
general and waves in particular. We agreed that if you
87
• Daylight in the Swamp could get on the forward side of a sufficiently large wave and paddle like hell, it would carry your canoe along like a surf-board. He claimed that he had paddled all the way across Great Bear Lake in a howling gale. The wind just kept getting stronger and stronger until he could see the huge waves crashing on cliffs a half-mile away. So he waited for the biggest wave he could find, stayed with it all the way in and landed in the bush atop a twenty-foot cliff!
88
chapter eight
Up Shetland Creek
Alf the cook tells it best: how they grounded on a rock
exactly brilliant. Entering the honours philosophy
above a rapid with a three-foot drop, how Keys failed to
program, I was exposed to first year honours Latin, which
hold the bow when they worked her off, and stood helpless
had already been the bete noire of my entire high school
on a rock on midstream as the canoe was swept down,
career. I failed the course. When I appealed my failure on
brightly remarking, "There she goes!" How he, Alphonse,
the grounds that the program required no further Latin
jumped out of the canoe into the water up to his neck and,
in any case, the eminent philosopher who headed the
stemming the current with one shoulder, hoisted the canoe
department made matters very plain. "Dewdney," he said,
on the other. From the author's journal on the Missinaibi River, July 1935
Figure 18. T r a p p e r ' s cabin, 1935
After my Lac Seul sojourn, five more years were to pass before I got back to the bush. And then I really got back to the bush. By the time I had completed my second summer at Lac Seul, I was convinced that I would not fit comfortably into the Anglican ministry. When I returned to Toronto for the final year of an arts degree, I moved out of Wycliffe College and rented an attic room on St. Patrick Street just south of College Avenue. My beginnings at the University of Toronto were not
89
Daylight in the Swamp "the honours course in philosophy includes a year of
Dana's Minerals and How to Study Them became my
honours Latin to eliminate students like yourself."
bible. It initiated me into the ABC's of crystallography
My transfer to the general program, as then ordained
and blowpipe analysis. I laboured long hours putting
by the university, gave me the choice of any five courses
together a cedar cabinet with a sliding glass top to house
out of twenty. I found myself in clover. One of my
my growing mineral collection.
choices, geology, was inspired by an early fascination with
Even my faithful Sunday school attendance paid off.
rocks that blossomed when I was in high school. It had
Through my teacher, "Nellie" Carpenter, I got to know
begun with that enormous rock I found as a boy,
the Machin family. Colonel Machin owned the Mikado
paddling the family canoe on Sand Lake in Saskatchewan.
gold mine on Shoal Lake. One summer the Machins
I have already described the impact of our move from the
invited me to stay with them for a week or so. The mine
prairies, where rocks were as rare as hen's teeth, to Lake of
was closed but the Colonel took me to a minor surface
the Woods, a land of solid rock.
vein, its pyrites weathered and crumbling. We took it to
When I entered high school in Kenora, I found to my
the mine laboratory, crushed it fine in a mortar and
great fortune that the principal (nicknamed "Rosy") had
pestle, then melted it down. When we poured the
a masters degree in geology. In those days Ontario high
molten rock into a bone ash cup, the cooling revealed a
schools offered a course in geology as an alternative to
gradual alchemy. A tiny button of pure gold emerged
geography. The rocky setting of Kenora offered ample
from the mixture.
scope to budding geologists. Along the CPR tracks which
Following graduation, I taught high school for two
I followed part way to school, I could find examples of
years in Owen Sound. At the same time, a growing
igneous rocks in the cuts the tracks passed through, and
interest in art attracted me to the Ontario College of Art.
sedimentary rocks in the railbed itself. The latter I could
There, I took summer courses in landscape painting from
readily break open for inspection by hurling them at the
J. W. Beatty. In the fall of 1934, I'd saved enough money
steel rails. I went from rocks to minerals, acquiring a
to attend the College full time, and Beatty admitted me
blowpipe to analyse the composition of various rocks that
into the third year of the drawing and painting course. By
I collected.
the spring of 1935, the depression was in its trough, I was
I especially loved the rock cuts that exposed rugged
flat broke, and things were bad everywhere. My brother
granite faces I could climb to my heart's delight. Here,
Albert, for example, had graduated in mechanical
and in the abandoned quarry behind our house, I found
engineering, but his first job was delivering meat by
actual veins of calcite, pyroxene, pyrites, and so on.
motorcycle for a Toronto butcher. I was luckier. On
90
Daylight in the Swamp geologist at the Royal Ontario Museum. This man later turned out to be the one who would appoint the quota from the University of Toronto. I was to be one of two traverse men on a ten-man survey crew. Our job, along with eight other such parties, was to survey the transition zone between the precambrian formations of the Canadian Shield and the Hudson Bay Lowlands. The study area took in a wide region stretching both east and west of Kapuskasing. Thus it was that in the summer of 1935 I found myself in Figure 19. Buildings at Mattice, 1935
graduating from the OCA in 1935,1 applied for and got a
the bush again but in a way that tested me physically beyond anything I'd experienced before.
job with the Geological Survey of Canada. Five thousand
Our party met, identifying ourselves upon arrival, at
had applied but only nine hundred were chosen. Not only
Glassy Falls on the Missinaibi River. Here, six miles
had I taken geology as an arts subject, but through my interest in the field I had made the acquaintance of a
Figure 20. Porquis Junction, 1935
91
Figure 21. Porquis Junction, 1935
• Daylight in the Swamp • upstream from Mattice a village on the CNR northern
Once down the trail a bit, they may well have turned the
line, we made our campsite. The falls were well named.
air blue with blasphemy.
The water poured massively down in a glassy arch that
In the midst of our misery, no one thought at first of
smashed itself on a huge rock near the base. The red
the "one towel" he had been instructed to bring.
haired chief, a veteran of previous surveys, divided us into
Lonergan took the towel out of his pack, hung it over his
two parties, each to consist of a traverse man, two axemen
head from side to side, and tucked the ends in around his
and a cook. He personally took charge of one party and
shirt collar from back around to front which he securely
Boyes, a geology graduate, headed the other. I was
buttoned. Then he jammed his fedora onto his head over
traverse man in Boyes' party and two other students,
the towel. It worked almost perfectly.
Mark Lonergan and Jack Hegg, were the axemen. Our
Before the light failed I made a quick watercolour
cook was a man named Bill and Alf (quoted at the head
sketch of the falls. This was duly noted and later the chief
of this chapter) cooked for the chief's party. Before the
would ask me to paddle downstream in the expedition's
week was out, Mark and I would become firmly
seventeen foot canoe to sketch outcrops.
established traverse mates while Boyes, his face pitifully bloated by blackfly bites, would be out.
Traversing was a simple affair, on the face of it. Each township, laid out in 1906, occupied thirty square miles.
It was late June, the very peak of the mosquito season.
Lot posts set out at half-mile intervals marked the
The hungry hordes had already emerged from the bush in
township lines that ran east and west. Called range lines,
their millions, undeterred by any of our defences. Until
they set the northern and southern township boundaries.
Mark Lonergan's discovery.
Lot lines, blazed through the bush north to south,
We had no headnets, the citronella simply sweated off
connected corresponding lot posts on each range line. A
our skin after a few minutes, and effective sprays had yet
normal traverse started at a lot post on a range line, went
to be developed. Two prospectors came by as we engaged
north (or south) to the corresponding lot post on the
in our many defensive operations, swats and curses.
other range line, turned east (or west) along it to the next
Staying on for a chat, they seemed not to notice the
lot post, then turned south along that lot line back to the
mosquitoes. The mosquitoes attacked the pair just as
original range line a half mile from the starting point.
vigorously as they attacked us but the prospectors
If a party following a traverse came upon a rock
showed no sign of annoyance or even interest. This
outcrop, it would stop to investigate. This meant
impressed me enormously at the time although in
estimating the outcrop's area, charting it on the traverse
retrospect, I suspect they they were merely showing off.
map as to strike and dip, evidence of mineralization 92
Daylight in the Swamp and so on. We also had to take samples of each kind of
small lake or stream you couldn't wade across, an acre of
rock encountered.
muskeg, the path of a twister, and so on. There were any
To navigate we were equipped with a Brunton
number of obstacles along the way to throw out your
compass (a miniaturized surveyor's transit) and a pace
measurements. Ocean navigation was child's play by
meter. You held the latter instrument in your hand and
comparison—with one exception. Many of the township
merely pressed a lever every time the same foot came
lines and not a few lot lines were adopted as
down. For the average male, a thousand paces on normal
thoroughfares by the local four-footed populations. So,
terrain marked off a mile, a scale dating back to Roman
unless you went in circles (rather difficult, when carrying
times. A very tall, mooselegged man or a very short one,
a compass, but possible), you would sooner or later cross
would have to calibrate his paces, so to speak.
a township line. By following it to a lot post and reading
So much for theory. In practice you might encounter a
the markings, you could find out exactly where you were.
steep slope, an impassable thicket, a mile of fire slash, a
Navigating on the open sea offered no such conveniences, of course.
Figure 22. Sunday, pencil sketch
Over the summer, our parties surveyed four full townships and parts of three others. We covered Staunton, Shetland, Magladery, Orkney and Ebbs from four base camps that we set up along the Missinaibi River and its tributary, Shetland Creek. But we could reach two other townships, Devitt and McGowan, in the clay belt of the Hudson Bay lowlands, by a road that was destined to become Trans Canada Highway Number 11. Additional easement came from the absence of any significant outcrops in these areas. We enjoyed the occasional luxury of bedding down on the floor of a warehouse and being driven by truck to and from our daily traverse. Once, for example, we breezed through our eleven-mile traverse without seeing a single rock. We emerged from the bush onto a farm clearing with ample time to snooze happily on a pile of hay before the truck came to pick us up.
93
• Daylight in the Swamp • Upriver, however, our time was almost equally divided
into a rock where our bow grounded. I found a grip on
between traversing and moving our base. Once, when
the bottom with my paddle, trying in vain to hold the
moving our base, we got into the tight situation quoted at
stern. But the current was too strong. It swung us all the
the beginning of this chapter. We thought we could take
way around, lifting us off the rock in the process. We
both our canoes, a seventeen-foot, square-sterned freight
disappeared into white water, going backwards. I
canoe and a smaller one, over a rapids on the Missinaibi
remember only a sickening scrape on our keel, the bow
River. The freight canoe, driven by a kicker, went first.
suddenly dipping and filling with water. Miraculously it
Jack Hegg and I, in the smaller canoe, had been holding
came up again, the canoe half filled with water by now.
ourselves above the rapids until the freight canoe was
Meanwhile, the freight canoe went out of control, hit
clearly on its way along a gentler, left-hand channel of the
another rock and went over. That's when Alphonse the
rapids. We set ourselves into the more turbulent right-
cook jumped out of the canoe more or less involuntarily,
hand channel. That's when the freight canoe's motor
stemmed the current with one shoulder and hoisted the
caught on a rock. Once the boys got it free, however, it
canoe onto the other. They righted the canoe almost
pointed toward the left-hand channel—and the motor
immediately and went chasing downstream for a bedroll
was still running wide open. That's when Keys, standing
and one or two other unsecured items from the larger
helplessly on a rock in midstream, made his now famous
canoe. How our own canoe ever escaped capsizing, I'll
remark: "There she goes."
never know. It was, in any event, my first (and last)
Of course, the freight canoe was now heading into our
experience of shooting a rapids backwards.
channel. A collision seemed inevitable. All Jack and I
A kicker could get you into trouble in any number of
could do was paddle like hell and hope to hit the channel
ways. In those days when your motor ran out of gas, you
first. And the freighter, carrying everyone else but Keys,
simply poured more gas in from a tin you had along. This
had to go just as fast to avoid being swept into the
was a bit hazardous because if your motor was a little hot
seething fury of white water. We almost made it.
and you spilled a little gas on it, you were instantly on
I watched in a kind of fascinated horror from my
fire. Although I was involved in just such a fire on Lac
position in the stern of our canoe as the nose of the
Seul once, we never had this problem on the geological
freighter bore down on me. There was just time for one
survey in Northern Ontario.
more desperate stroke of the paddle before—bang! It got
Nevertheless, three of us, Stewart McBrien, John Hegg,
us two inches from the stern. The blow knocked us off
and I had to refuel the freight canoe's kicker one day as
our course, out of the smooth part of the channel, and
we came up a calm stretch of the Missinaibi River.
94
Daylight in the Swamp McBrien poured the gasoline from a large can that was nearly empty. He poured with a steady hand to avoid spilling any on the hot motor then, as was the common practice in those days, he dumped the can overboard. Hegg, whose attention must have been elsewhere, heard the splash. There followed the most amazing reflex action I've ever seen. Hegg was in the canoe one second and in the water the next, his arms around what he'd taken to be a man overboard—the spent gas can! We were all so startled by the intensity of the thing, awed even, that we forgot to laugh at the ludicrous expression on John's face as he eyed the "man" he had saved. There could be no doubting John's athletic prowess. I can recall a newspaper clipping he showed us once from his hometown paper. The sports page expressed regret that
Figure 23.
The Kid - Camp Helper, 1935
Hegg was missing from the hometown baseball team but looked forward to his starring on the local football team
instance, you'd hear sentences like, "Where the fuck did
come fall.
that fucker put the fucking whore of a cocksucker of an
Whenever I had the chance, I would sketch my bush
axe?" Such passages were so common as to be not worth
colleagues or a bit of landscape in pencil and watercolours.
recording. But I did get some good stuff from old Bill
I also tried taking down, in longhand, some of the talk
Gouge, an old-timer who joined our party for a few weeks.
around the fire at the end of the day. The vocabulary was
He was ever ready to share the observations and
rough, at least by the standards that prevailed then, when
experiences of his life with anyone who would listen, as in
any woman who used four-letter words was considered
the following verbatim example:
loose if not a whore. We considered it robustly male to use
"Well, it's like this. There are some men who will keep
every scatological, blasphemous, and erotic word in the
things hid. Others is more open. Some men, if they
English and French languages, words that were totally
catched a man with their wife, it's according to humanity.
taboo in mixed company. Strangely, the result of using this
If I thought my wife was prone and she said I wasn't
unlimited vocabulary was to limit personal expression. For
suited to her, I'd shake hands and call her a lady.
95
Daylight in the Swamp "Now I seen an instance—'twas in an apartment
crew had stopped to pick up a French lad whose father
house—they thought I was off to work and this couple. I
had abandoned him, hopelessly drunk, to walk home.
know there was a quarrel and he cast up that he screwed
The truck was already packed to the straining point and
her before he married her. He was talkin' quite plain. How,
soon began reeking to high heaven with digestive gases.
in instance like that? What are you goin' to do? Does your
The lad became heartily unwelcome and the crew began
wife have to go without because you're down and out?
to chorus: "Stop the truck. Throw the bugger out!"
"Take for instance there's some that's got a hot box
The lad started to cry and clung affectionately to one
eating the side of their leg out. There's others closely
after another of the crew until they all roared in unison,
attached and you'd think nothing would keep them apart.
"For Christ's sake, throw the bastard out!" But, as it
And a couple of years later. You don't know !"
happened, Alf the cook was currently in negotiations for
When we got out to Kapuskasing near the end of that summer, it was time to let the students go and re-align
a closer acquaintance with the boy's sister and he forced the driver to carry the lad to his destination.
the parties. I had to remain in the base camp with a
The end of summer was now drawing near and we
nasty cold but the rest of the crew took off for town on
had one more township, Ebbs, to clean up. While
the GSC truck to begin a frantic search for female
McBrien's crew was nearly intact, we would have to
company before returning to the bush later that night.
reorganize to finish Ebbs with maximum efficiency. But
When they got back, everyone was drunk and someone
first we would have to ascend Shetland Creek, relaying
shoved a bottle into my hands. The contents were sheer
our supplies by canoe and packing as one, big team.
rotgut and one searing swallow was enough for me.
What followed was some of the bitchiest travel of the
Then the stories began.
entire season.
Jack Hegg, for instance, reported his attraction to a
For as much as a half mile at a time, the creek trickled
passing skirt. He had introduced himself with the loaded
through boulders that littered its bed. We'd come to a
question, "Excuse me. Can you tell me where Pine
navigable stretch, put the canoe in the water again, turn a
Street is?" The meaning, cryptic only to the uninitiated,
bend and find more boulders. Or the water would be
was that he wanted to "get up into the tall timbers". "Are
shallow, and we'd push, pole, and drag our way along.
you trying to be fresh," she had apparently asked. "No.
Finally, we packed all our gear and supplies to carry them
Wouldn't dream of it," he replied, looking his freshest.
along a series of portages, alternately pushing and
And off they disappeared toward the park.
paddling the canoe, as before.
On their way back to base camp in the GSC truck, the
But we had our reward. How strange to find that the
96
Nama Creek Falls, 1945 28 x 23 inches, oil on canvas From the collection of A.K. Dewdney
Bill Robinson, 1933 6 x 7V2 inches, water colour on paper From the collection of The John Gordon Home
Gull Lake, 1940 1672 x IPA inches, oil on masonite board From the collection of Irene Dewdney
Whitefish Falls — sketch, 1943 17x12 inches, oil on masonite board From the Christopher Dewdney collection
Rackety Falls, 1942 2574 x 197i inches, oil on masonite board From the collection of Donner Dewdney
Wabuskane Lake, 1941 307s x 26 inches, oil on canvas From the collection of Irene Dewdney
Rock, Water & Tree, 1949 35 x 53 inches, oil on canvas From the collection of Irene Dewdney
Gull Lake Point, 1942 13Vz x 11 inches, oil on masonite board From the collection of Calla Dewdney
Bush Camp, c. 1935 9[/2 x 6 inches, water colour on paper From the collection of A.K.Dewdney
Lac Seul Church, 1953 10x7 inches, water colour and ink on paper t From the collection of Marilyn Conklin -
Wabuskane Lake Study, 1957 12'/2 x 11 inches, oil on masonite board From the collection of A.K. Dewdney
Bill Goudge, 1945 16 x 20 inches, oil on masonite board From the collection of Donner Dewdney
Standing Antelope, 1965 15 x 24 inches, water colour on paper From the collection of Donner Dewdney
Rackety Falls, c. 1943 25 x 19 inches, oil on masonite board From the collection of Donner Dewdney
Precambrian Shore, 1953 30V2 x 26*/2 inches, oil on masonite board From the collection of Donner Dewdney
Windy Shore, Gull Lake, c. 1950 35 x 25 inches, oil on masonite board From the collection of Donner Dewdney
§ Daylight in the Swamp §
Figure 24, Bush landscape, 1935
Figure 25, T r a p p e r ' s cabin, 1935
stream widened and deepened as we emerged from bush
older and two younger brothers. On this occasion,
and boulders. It opened out to swamp and muskeg with
however, I was falling behind, yelling to the others to
clearly defined shores and still, deep water. I recall how
"wait up" as I heard them fading into the distance. Trying
shocked I was to sound the depths with my paddle,
to run only made it worse. I would run and fall, run and
immersing its entire length and a good portion of my
fall again, pestered by flies, sweating in the heat and just
arm to feel no bottom at all. It soon became apparent that
about ready to cry with the frustration of it all.
our course meandered through a lake in the process of
I had just fallen again when I heard Mark's voice right
reclamation. Vegetation, some of it a floating grass, grew
beside me with some sort of irritating witticism. I rarely
out from the shores.
lose my temper, even vocally, but my reaction on this
Our final stretch to the Township corner took us
occasion was sheer rage. I swung my axe viciously at his
through a cedar swamp. Priding myself as a packer, I
nearest leg. I don't know whether I misjudged the
always loaded up a little more heavily than the others and
distance or unconsciously managed to miss. But it was
could normally keep up. Here, though, the footing was so
enough to turn Mark as white as a sheet. He knew that I
treacherous that I kept snagging my feet in dead cedars to
always kept my axe razor sharp. He might not have bled
fall, pack, pails, axe, and all.
to death during the seventy-two hour trip back to
My traverse mate, Mark, was an expert at teasing.
Kapuskasing, he would have been lame for life. Mark told
Usually I could handle this, having grown up with two
no one about the incident. Strangely, it not only ended
97
Daylight in the Swamp
Figure 26.
S u r v e y Camp, 1935
the teasing entirely, it brought us closer together.
frenzy. Younger environmentalists may need reminding
If the axe was a dangerous weapon, it was also the
that in those days no one could conceive of the ruthless
focus of considerable horseplay during rest periods.
exploitation of the forest resources that would follow.
Reviewing the chief's instructions one lazy Sunday
Trees simply replaced trees ad infinitum. No doubt we
afternoon, someone quoted: " . . . considerable ingenuity
also lived in the shadow of pioneer times, when the forest
must be exercised in locating outcrops, such as climbing
was an adversary to be cleared for highways and farms. In
tall trees and picking out ridges . .." The reading inspired
short, a tree-felling contest in the context of 1930s
Jack to exercise enough ingenuity to climb a small spruce
Ontario was simply good, clean fun!
in the muskeg nearby. No sooner had he reached the top
It was Mark who started it. Pointing to a tall poplar, he
than Mark rushed over with his axe. It took him only
announced that when it fell, it would take two others with
three strokes to bring Jack crashing to the ground for a
it. An experienced axeman always cuts a tree so that it
soft but wet landing in the sphagnum.
falls all the way to the ground. If it gets hung up on a
In another instance, while camped in a grove of tall
neighbouring tree, he's got an embarrassing "jackpot".
aspen poplars, we descended into a mad tree-felling
Mark was pretty good with his axe so we watched as it bit
98
Daylight in the Swamp through the ten-inch trunk of the poplar. It swayed, then toppled, crashing onto two slim birches exactly where he'd wanted it to. The birches bent until we were sure they d break, but they held. "Caw! Caw!" Old Bill crowed in appropriate response to the jackpot. A little flustered, Mark chopped out a big length from the poplar but the butt fell the wrong way to a chorus of caws. Then we all got the fever and ran amok with axes among the spruces, birches and poplars. A contest broke out. Who could fell the biggest tree with the fewest strokes? Young Bill, our sub-party leader, stepped up to a big tree, claiming that he could bring her down with twenty strokes. The first stroke bit in, true and strong. The second went astray. The third stroke took out the chip. By thirteen strokes, he had a deep notch on the falling side. Then he went around the tree and began the big notch on
Figure 27, Bill Goudge, Axeman, 1935
the other side. We counted his strokes. Bill was beginning
young spruce bent under the impact, but held.
to sweat. Two strokes left. We all turned our eyes to the
Apart from such interludes, it was one traverse after
top of the tree. The nineteenth stroke set it quivering. Bill
another, most often with Mark as my traverse-mate, but
stopped, looked up. then inspected the trunk. Then he
sometimes with others. The traverses continued day after
walked around to examine the other side of the tree with
day, in almost any kind of weather. They lasted through
a calculating eye. He tested the wind.
the summer and fall into October. Bill Goudge (Old
Then, placing himself as carefully as a golfer on a critical
Bill) went with me on one traverse that looked like an
putt, legs apart, back straight, he drew his axe back like a
easy nine miles on the map. The first mile and a half
baseball bat. Whack! The tree quivered and shook, the top
took us along the range line game trail. As soon as we
swayed uncertainly, then slowly began to lean to the north.
reached the lot post to turn north, Bill sat down for a
"Timber!" Bill's cry was triumphant.
smoke. A mile further on we came to a wide, deep
"Caw! Caw! Caw!" Old Bill crowed as a thicket of
creek. It seemed to me that a nearby tree would bridge
99
• Daylight in the Swamp • the creek if I felled it the right way. Old Bill doubted it
cooked-up map. I only had to recall the faulty map that
so I rashly bet him a box of cigars. The tree fell twenty
got me into such trouble on the way to Millidge during
feet short so we set out a mile or so upstream only to
my Lac Seul days.
find that it was still too wide and deep to cross. But a
But Bill had a good heart. When we paused later to
little further we came to a fork where a deadfall
finish up our lunch, he insisted on me taking the last
spanned the wider branch.
sandwich. "Them as is young needs the food", he said. He
It was noon so we stopped to eat a sandwich and
rambled on. For the seventh time he informed me that
consider our situation. With a definite lack of enthusiasm
his sons had taken in seventy-one tons of hay last
Bill agreed that we'd cross there and do as much of the
summer. After this job, he had another waiting for him
traverse as we had time for. He couldn't understand why I
"doin' assessment work". He went on to confide that Carl,
didn't just "fix up" the notes to show a completed
our team leader, "dasn't say a thing to me because me an'
traverse. He averred that the "boys do it all the time". But
Paul (Paul Leduc, then Ontario Minister of Mines) is just
I was reluctant to mislead some future traveller with a
like that". He crossed two fingers.
Figure 28.
Three Pre-Cambrians, 1935
100
• Daylight in the Swamp • As the summer progressed, my skill with compass and
firefighting must be like. Mark and I observed the other
pace meter progressed apace. On sunny days I could
fire on our most westerly traverse, one that brought us
dispense with the compass, allowing for the changing
within sight of the Algoma Central Line that ran from
shadows as the sun moved west. Even after skirting wide
Hearst to Sault Ste Marie. As we neared the end of our lot
swamps or impassable fire slash I was able to return to
line, we smelled smoke, then came out upon an area
my line more or less accurately. As evidence of this skill, I
where the moss was smouldering away without a single
could cite the difficulties that Mark and I encountered
flame visible. Under the right conditions, this area could
one day. We came to one diversion after another,
generate a raging fire. But there was nothing we could do.
culminating in a muskeg swamp from which we finally
We would have had to roll back all the peat, all the rotting
emerged near the end of the day. But had we crossed the
logs in the whole area, snuffing every single coal. Yet,
township line or not? We depended on the line to get
that's what fire crews must do at the end of a fire. Not one
back to our base camp. Mark went ahead to look but he'd
spark must remain.
hardly been gone for a minute when I excitedly called
In those days, kickers got crews to some fires and
him back. "Look," I said, shaking with incredulity. I
aircraft had already come into limited use. But a mere
pointed to the rotting grey lot post that I had just
decade earlier, it was the hardy rangers of the Ontario
spotted— exactly between my feet!
Forestry Branch (later Lands and Forests, now Natural
As fall approached, the weather became more and
Resources) who paddled to fires. They brought portable
more erratic. Showers alternated with sunshine. Fifteen
pumps, picks, shovels and grub, packing them over
minutes of slogging through the wet bush was enough to
portages. These travel methods had one side benefit for
soak you through to the skin. Rainwear? Try sweating
canoeists in those days: The rangers kept all the portages
under a waterproof jacket. It's an even better way of
and trails in their area beautifully serviceable.
getting soaked. Waterproof boots? We all wore heavy
Thankfully, the fire we witnessed on our traverse was
socks and calf-length elkhide boots that kept your feet
not likely to develop into a conflagration. It was
dry until the first time you forded a stream or sank to
September and the fire season had almost ended. The
your hips in soft muskeg.
days were rapidly shortening, morning dews were heavier,
Fires were rare in that country. We encountered only
and the first snows, in that part of the country, were not
two. One blazed by the roadside with nowhere to go but
long off. By the same token, traversing grew into a real
into a ploughed field. Nevertheless, I was amazed at the
test of endurance in those fall days.
heat that it threw off and got a new appreciation of what 101
When the students left for school at the end of
• Daylight in the Swamp • September, we re-organized our crews. At the same time,
remember the last name of Dave, the diminutive French-
a geologist named Carl Collins needed another man for a
Canadian cook. But his unfailing sense of humour, his
party that was going up the Missinaibi to Magladery
skill with the harmonica, his sheer joie de vivre whatever
township. Three men in our own party were eligible:
the circumstances, provided welcome relief from the
Mark, Nells Timmerman, and I. None of us was
morose Collins. Fortunately, Dave joined our sub-party
particularly anxious to join the new crew since here, in
and I was to see Collins only at tolerably spaced intervals.
McGowan township, we found ourselves in the "lap of
Perhaps what the crew found most intolerable was the
luxury", relatively speaking. But Collins' party was
way Collins loaded up everyone but himself as we moved
scheduled to leave the very next day so Mark produced
the base camp inland. It seemed that a man named
three pennies: "Odd man wins." We all tossed our
George, who at five feet was even smaller than Dave the
pennies. With sinking heart I stared at the other two
cook, was picked on to pack the heaviest loads. On one
pennies. They matched and I was the odd man out.
occasion I had an attack of what was probably stomach
Collins's party would travel away up the Missinaibi
flu. Since I shared Collins's tent, he was certainly aware of
River past the mouth of Shetland Creek. Then they would pack the supplies and gear inland, first five miles along
Figure 29. Dave, 1935
the south township line of Magladery, then six miles along its east boundary. Setting out the next morning with nine strangers, I had the only strong premonition I've ever experienced. I knew that I would never come back! Perhaps it was my disappointment, perhaps it was knowing that we were heading for some bitchy country. I was simply certain, as we made our way up one stony stretch after another, that I would never come out of the bush alive. It was obvious from the start not only that Collins was heartily disliked by the rest of the crew but that he hated his job, hated the bush, and was in an almost constant state of depression. Except for Collins, I have no record of any surnames on that trip. For example, I don't
102
Daylight in the Swamp The fall weather gave us alternating days of rain and sun. One shower would drench the bush so a five-minute walk would soak your clothes. Then, when we were barely dry, another shower would come. Worst of all, and quite new for me, was the early snow that numbed feet and hands. It melted into ice water that seeped into our boot tops. When we camped on swampy ground, there was no sitting around the fire at night. Instead, we stood before a fierce, drying fire, rotating ourselves as the steam rose from our clothes. If we stood too long in one position the steam would scald our legs. At night we were beset by the leg cramps and backaches that came of too much hard slogging and too little sleep. We might have endured all this, even joked about it, Figure 30, Dave, 1935
had we known that we'd ever get out of this endless
my vomiting and gave me the day off, to rest at the base
nightmare of drudgery. Or if we had a leader who shared
camp. But a few days later, when Bill and George returned
it with us or offered a cheerful countenance instead of the
from a traverse, George had come down with the same
gloom he shed whenever he appeared. Times have
complaint, as sick as a dog. Collins let him sit out the next
changed. I doubt whether today's students could have
traverse but nevertheless sent him and Bill in to us with
taken that sort of punishment. But this was the middle of
two packs of supplies that we didn't even need!
the great depression and the nine-hundred students like
As September went by, conditions on the trail
me were lucky to have been chosen from among the five-
worsened. We worked in terrain that offered the full range
thousand applicants. In fact, everyone in our party was
of ugly going: swamp cedars that tore our pant legs to
lucky to have jobs.
shreds, alder swamp with its treacherous footing, spruce
Nevertheless, mutiny was imminent. One day during a
swamp, fire slash with prone trunks cleverly concealed
freak snowstorm we had holed up in a trapper's cabin, all
beneath dense second growth. And muskeg, rubbery
bitching for the twentieth time, when I suggested that we
underfoot, like dry sand, until your leg plunges thigh-
should each write down our own idea of what to do. I
deep into sucking black muck that saps all your strength.
have kept those scraps of paper to this day. They all seem
103
• Daylight in the Swamp • reasonable, agreeing that we should "pull stakes". Dave
working east of Kapuskasing. So I was totally unprepared,
put it best: "I think the most logical thing to do would be
when we stopped at a little station, to see a familiar GSC
to wait until this snowstorm is over and then go out to
truck standing by. And there beside it, incredibly, none
the river."
other than McBrien, Nell, Mark and the others. I raced to
In my final letter of the season to Irene I wrote, "It is
the open end of my car to wave. They all waved back. But
ceasing to be a comfort that my pay is accumulating: This
the train had already started up and soon they were out
life is draining the spirits out of me—it's so useless. Its
of sight. So I was utterly surprised at the next stop when
disciplinary value is a thing of the past. Now I have to
who should come aboard but Nell. "Quick! Mark and the
fight against a sort of benumbing effect... It's an effort to
rest are out back!" Again the train was starting up. And
sit down and sketch . . . and even writing to you I am
there was Mark, racing up the track toward me.
haunted with the feeling that you don't exist except as a beautiful dream ..."
The train gathered speed and Nell dropped off. Mark made a final sprint, reaching out with his hand. I grasped
Early in October, the orders finally came out of
it and held on until the train finally wrenched us apart.
Kapuskasing. We were to come out! That morning, our
Mark stood waving in the middle of the track. I
tent was so stiff from frozen rain that we had to bend it
continued to wave back, my eyes growing wet with tears,
every whichway to get it more or less folded. Finally, we
until Mark receded into the vanishing point of the twin
had to jump on it to pack it into the canoe. When we got
rails. Returning to my seat, I was choked with the feeling
out to the Missinaibi, the river had changed completely.
of loss. We had forged a bond that was far more
Instead of the endless terraces of tomb-like boulders,
meaningful to me than I realized.
with only a few stretches of navigable water, it had
I was never again to see Mark Lonergan. But I heard
become a rushing torrent, fed by the heavy rains and
his voice eleven years later, when my first novel, Wind
rain-melted snows.
Without Rain, came out. He called from his home town
At Mattice we were paid off and given back the clothes we had left at the headquarters. Now we looked respectable even though none of us had yet enjoyed the
of Buckingham, Quebec, to congratulate me. As the old saying goes, shared vicissitudes separate the men from the boys. Mark was a man.
luxury of a bath. I boarded the train for Toronto, little suspecting that I was about to experience an incident that would haunt me for the rest of my life. I knew that my old party, Stew McBrien's, was still
104
Daylight in the Swamp
Figure 31. Mark Lonergan, 1935,,
105
Figure 32,
Map showing part canoe trip made by Selwyn and Irene Dewdney, 1937
chapter nine
Bush
Honeymoon
Day began early (about 1 a. raj with a visit from Maclean and Doc. Bancroft had locked the boathouse door. Maclean leaned gently against it and smashed it to fragments. From the honeymoon journal, Hawk Lake, Ontario The Year of Our Lord 1936 was a momentous one. That fall, on October the third, Irene and I were married by no less a person than my father. Besides presiding at my marriage, he had baptised and confirmed me. He was also to baptise three of our four sons before his death in 1945. Musing on where it all began, I could say it started during the College of Art summer school in Port Hope in 1932 when I met Irene. Or did it begin when a Swedish silk merchant by the name of Anderson married a Chinese lady to have a daughter named Ingeborg? It was Irene's friend "Inky" Anderson, a fellow member of the KW sketch club, who talked Irene into taking a couple of weeks off to attend the Port Hope summer school. 107
Figure 33. Christmas card made by S e l w y n Dewdney, 1937
• Daylight in the Swamp • It was here that I met the woman I would share my life
paddle, and all the camping gear we needed. The last
with but, during the next four years, we saw each other only
included two items that I had borrowed more or less
on weekends. I had to complete my studies at the Ontario
permanently from Dad: the eiderdown sleeping robe and
College of Art, then at the Ontario College of Education, as
the six-by-six wedge tent of Egyptian cotton, the same
well as a stint of high-school teaching in Owen Sound.
robe and "silk tent" that Dad and I had used on the trip to
In the summer of 1934, however, Irene came to
Big Trout Lake.
Kenora for a visit. During the visit, Irene and I
Irene and I were off for Red Lake by a circuitous route
accompanied my brother Albert and his girl, Margaret, on
that would cover five hundred miles. We would make
a three-day canoe excursion to Hazel Island on Lake of
fifty-one portages, average seventeen miles a day, see fifty-
the Woods. On the way home, we became thoroughly lost
three deer and a dozen moose. On the other hand, we
as evening turned to night. Just when I figured we'd have
would paddle for three and a a half days on the English
to spend the night under the stars, we spied the lights of a
River without seeing a single other human being. Our
commercial fishing camp twinkling from afar. Here we
canoe was rented, a Rice Lake type, fifteen feet long,
found two warm beds graciously offered by the staff,
canvas covered, and with an aluminum nose.
Sleeping in the same bed was not then the casual affair it
We started away from the boathouse in calm water,
seems to be these days. So Irene turned around her
heading for our first landmark, Devil's Gap, with just
"engagement" ring, a Chinese ruby I'd bought for $17, to
enough freeboard to handle the chop that soon
make it look like a wedding ring. This took care of any
developed as we came to open water. Our first portage,
scruples our host might have had.
still several miles off, would take us into Blindfold Lake.
Irene took to the canoe with such enthusiasm that she
As we got out in the stretch of lake past Bare Point, the
was eager for more. But it was not until the summer of
water became too rough for comfort. Entering less
1937 that we had the time or money for something more
familiar water a few miles on, I drew out the first sheet
ambitious. We had a whole month clear. Why not take a
of our route map to see whether we were close to the
real trip, from Kenora to Red Lake and back again? It
Blindfold Lake portage. I had carefully prepared these
would be the ultimate honeymoon.
map sheets by cutting up a much larger map of
According to the journal I kept then, it was a windy
northwestern Ontario, based in part on recent aerial
morning on July 23rd that we embarked from the family
surveys. Nearly all the portages were shown, along with
boathouse on Kenora Bay, across from the main town. We
the height of every falls. I pasted each of the sections
had two weeks of supplies loaded into the canoe, an extra
covering our route onto a compact, oily cardboard back.
108
Daylight in the Swamp • Out on the choppy stretch, I no sooner turned the
later become the Trans Canada Highway. We climbed the
first map right side up to look at it, when the wind
embankment, crossed the road, and found ourselves on
whipped it out of my hands. I watched helplessly as it
the portage, a well-beaten track through a stand of
slid into the lake a mere foot beyond my paddle's reach. I
jackpine. Irene was ahead with a load, I followed with the
had a small backup map, but we came ashore anyway at
canoe. Then I came up to her, standing still. "Look!" she
an oldtimer's cabin to check on our whereabouts. It turned out that we'd overshot the outlet to Blindfold Lake by a couple of miles. The lake was well-named. Two steep, rocky shores overlapped each other, hiding the entrance until we were practically on top of it. Here we came to a small falls with some pictographs above them. As a youth in Kenora, I had been to Blindfold Lake a couple of times and I knew of the "Indian paintings" on the rock just above the little falls. When Irene and I made the lift-over of twenty feet or so, we gave the site only a passing glance. Our attentions had been caught by an osprey's nest near a high rock some fifty yards further along the shore. I made a pencil sketch, we stopped for a quick supper, then moved on. A westerly breeze gave me the idea for a sail. We rigged one
Figure 34. Blindfold Lake, 1937
and let the wind take us to the mouth of Rushing River. The water here flowed smoothly past reed-lined shores.
whispered. There, standing in our path, was a beautiful
But beside the three-hundred-yard portage that followed,
whitetail doe. She turned her head to regard us, more
we discovered why the river was called Rushing. Here
with dignity than concern, then ambled into the bush.
began that part of the route I had marked out on my maps but had never traveled. We paddled a half mile stretch of placid river, then came to a second rapids—and a gravel road that would 109
The portage came out on the shore of Dogtooth Lake where we had a swim and a feast of fresh pickerel donated by a party of fishermen below Medicine Rock Falls. On our second day out from Kenora, we portaged
• Daylight in the Swamp • into Hawk Lake. The CPR ran along the north shore of
sand before us, propped up on one elbow. As Irene
the lake, which gave its name to a whistle stop on the
stepped out of the boat and approached him, he greeted
lake, a more or less typical northern "mushroom village."
her by name, took her hand and, instead of shaking it,
There was a trading post, some bungalows, and a rock
pulled her down on the sand to bestow a hearty
crushing plant. As I would learn later that afternoon, all
welcoming kiss. Observing this from the boat, I began to
the CPR track ballast from Fort William to Winnipeg
bridle at this handling of my girl. I jumped out to
came from that plant. Moreover, the plant was owned by
confront the man. He got to his feet then, a towering
one Harry MacLean.
presence built, as they say in the North, like a brick
Two or three days before Irene and I set out, a brand
shithouse. Out of his MacLean plaid bush shirt came a
new float plane had flown into Kenora. Sleek and
great ham of a hand to envelop mine. He greeted us as
streamlined, it was as neat a floatplane as I've ever seen. I
"Vikings" and said that he was going to fly us up to Great
didn't realize it at the time, but it belonged to Harry
Bear Lake for reasons that are still not clear to me.
MacLean, a well-known, hard-drinking mining magnate
Later in the afternoon, we departed in boats for Hawk
of mountainous proportions. It was Harry MacLean who
Lake station, the town that MacLean virtually owned. The
built the power plant at Abitibi Falls. It was Harry
party in the last boat to leave had the misfortune to
MacLean who used to throw ten-dollar bills from his
neglect taking MacLean aboard. They were called back
Toronto hotel room window, just for amusement.
with, "One of you bastards better come and get me if you
We were about two miles from the track when a squall
want to keep your balls!"
came up, forcing Irene and I to take shelter in a bay until
The details of the next twelve hours would need
it blew over. In the middle of this, a power launch hove
another whole chapter. Suffice it to say that MacLean put
into view, slowing so that its occupants could inquire,
us up as his guests in the bedroom over his boathouse.
"Are you the Dufeys from Kenora?" I said we probably
His secretary, a man named Bancroft, slept on a cot in a
were. "Well, Harry MacLean is expecting you. He's
screened-in balcony next to our bedroom,
throwing a party over at the beach."
Around one o'clock in the morning, we were just
This sounded interesting so we tied our canoe to the
falling asleep when we heard MacLean's stentorian voice
launch and climbed aboard. There were at least twenty
just outside the boathouse: "Who the hell locked this
people picknicking on the beach when we came ashore,
bloody door?" We could hear Bancroft jump out of his
obviously a drinking party. Unmistakeably the centre of
cot to scurry to our room. "Lock your door!" His voice
the group, a great and conspicuous figure lolled on the
shook, as did the boathouse itself when MacLean 110
• Daylight in the Swamp • pounded on the outside door. Then came the sound of
and dig out the cook to make us a real feed of flapjacks."
Bancroft running down the stairs. "I'm coming ..." There
To match Harry MacLean, pancake for pancake, at four
was a great crash of breaking glass and splintering wood
o'clock in the morning was perhaps the most heroic act of
as MacLean leaned on the door, knocking it flat. The man
my life. Back at long last to the boathouse, I awoke Irene
was clearly under the influence. Bancroft pleaded with
with the memorable words, "Let's get the hell out of here!"
him, offering his resignation and imploring his boss to go
Only at ten the next morning did MacLean give the
no further.
order to let his "Vikings" continue their journey. A truck
"Are you trying to tell me I can't come into my own
took us over the portage out of Hawk Lake. Three lakes
boathouse any time of the day—or NIGHT?" He roared.
and one portage later found us sweating our way up a
"See those gasoline drums? Who's going to stop me from
narrow little creek. It was a nightmare of twisting
dumping out the gas and putting a match to the whole
through alders, paddling, pushing, pulling ourselves
Goddamned building?"
under fallen trees, and chopping through deadfall. When
By this time, Irene was sitting up in bed, shaking.
we finally reached the next lake, Linklater, we were dog-
With heroic courage I went out to meet MacLean as he
tired. We immediately made a camp on the shore and
came up the stairs. He stopped to explain that he'd just
tasted the sweetness of utter relaxation.
come up to see if we'd like to fly up to Great Bear Lake
The next day dawned grey. Disregarding the rain, we
to see a construction job he had going. Apparently, he
set out. On our first portage we found our reward for
took us for a pair of Vikings because he kept referring to
such doggedness, a fabulous field of wild strawberries. By
us as such. Suddenly he said, "Do you like steak?" "Sure",
the time we reached Bush Lake, the rain had let up, but
I said. "All right. We'll go over to my shack and have my
now we confronted a new problem: My map showed no
nurse cook us up a couple." His nurse, whom he
outlet! How had the aerial survey missed it?
apparently took everywhere with him to keep an eye on
Irene and I searched the shore for nearly an hour
his heart condition, came bleary-eyed out of her room,
until we finally found the outlet, a vertical thirty-foot
then cooked two enormous steaks. I managed to
falls! The portage was also missing from the map.
consume mine as if it were a routine midnight snack.
Another hour and we found it, too, but the day was too
When MacLean had finished his steak, the nurse got
far advanced to continue so we made our camp for the
him to lie down for a while. I was attempting to calm
night beside a trapper's cabin. That night we heard
him down and speak soothingly, when he swung his
mysterious noises from the cabin, but nothing in the
mighty legs out of bed. "Let's go down to the cookhouse
wilderness could alarm Irene after Hawk Lake and Harry
111
• Daylight in the Swamp • Maclean. We got up to investigate, only to encounter a
ashore? This was a curious illusion but, even more
porcupine emerging from the cabin.
curiously, I began to have it myself. Now we could hear
The next morning found us entering Canyon Lake via
the roar of the falls ahead of us, amplified by the gorge
a stream that passed under the railroad tracks through a
they fell through. We went ashore as a precaution, so that
culvert which, by hunching down, we followed. Emerging I could scout ahead. Here was the real Canyon River, a from the culvert, we were greeted by a vigorous west wind
rushing torrent smashing its way through huge boulders
that blew down the long, narrow lake from behind. The
that had fallen from a hundred and fifty foot cliff on one
waves got bigger, the further we went down the long
side of the gorge. Needless to say, we made our portage
stretch. With relief, we came to the railway stop at
on the other side. After several more portages, we camped
Canyon, where we went ashore.
for the night.
The entire population of Canyon, three women, four
The next morning we found ourselves paddling along
children, and a few men, had turned out to greet the local
as placid a stream as you could hope for, one with a sandy
train, due through shortly. Irene and I had just enough
bottom. Something prompted me to put out a line with a
time to dash off a few letters before the train arrived. Our
spinner on it. I often did this, when the opportunity
letters went straight into the mail car and here someone
arose. You never knew. Almost immediately I hooked a
handed down letters and parcels for the locals,
jackfish so huge that I couldn't be sure it wasn't a
exchanging greetings and gossip.
maskinonge. It came in quite docilely, as pike will
Back in the canoe again, we continued east up Canyon
sometimes do and, just as I was deciding whether to lift it
Lake. It was a perfect day for dog flies, with a hot sun and
out or stun it in the water, Irene whispered. "Look!
gusty wind. The little ankle-biters got busy nipping
There's a moose!" It was a female. She let us get quite
through our bush socks while we got quite skillful at
close, then waded majestically around a bend to reveal a
slaying them, thirty-six by our count. At last we reached
beautiful little calf. After a few moments, they went
Outlet Bay where we turned north to head for the mouth
calmly off together into the muskeg.
of the Canyon River.
Only then did I remember my fish. It was much too
So far, we had portaged past any fast water, so Irene
big to eat all of, but we decided to have some steaks from
had no experience to rely on. But she had seen the map,
it that evening. One more short portage and we found
knew that we were approaching a substantial falls, and
ourselves on the Wabigoon ("Flower" in Ojibway) River.
soon remarked that the river seemed to be slanting
There, at the first portage we came to, we paused for a
downwards. Wouldn't we be caught unless we went
breather and I painted my best water colour ever. The 112
Daylight in the Swamp
Figure 35. Rapids on the Wabigoon River, 1937
river poured over the smooth ledge of bedrock in a sleek,
grew colder, the mosquitos disappeared, and we fell into a
glassy sheet, curving down to break into white water
deep, untroubled sleep.
below. We could have shot this little fall successfully after
I dislike those who sermonize but indulge me a
lightening the canoe, but I have always followed the
moment: When we entered the Wabigoon River for the
native preference of portaging over perishing.
first time on our honeymoon trip in 1937 we found a
Too many experienced canoeists have met their end in
beautifully clear stream that urged you to dip in a cup. We
almost trivial accidents. I think, for example, of Blair
had no inkling then that in 1957 we would be driving out
Eraser who traversed a section of the old Northwest fur
of Dryden, the pulp and paper town on the Trans Canada
route with some canoeing colleagues from Ottawa. A
Highway, to cross that same river. We would view with
seasoned canoeman, Fraser nevertheless drowned in a
horror the dirty brown scum on its surface, scarcely
rapids. I might also cite the strange affair of Tom
needing the nearby sign: POLLUTED WATER
Thomson, who somehow drowned in an open lake.
Only a few years later, the troubles of the Ojibway at
Perhaps he capsized and was killed by hypothermia, a
nearby Grassy Narrows and White Dog would eclipse even
little known hazard of some northern lakes, where icy
these concerns. Dependent on the summer supply of fish
temperatures can remain well into June.
from the river, these native people would unwittingly take
The sun set on our camp at Wabigoon Falls. The air
in damaging doses of mercury. No voice in our wilderness,
was warm and the night was clear, so we decided to sleep
it seems, will ever still the need for resources, the greed for
under the stars in spite of the friendly mosquitos. Later, it
wealth and the misery that it so often creates.
113
• Daylight in the Swamp • Next day we left the mouth of the lovely Wabigoon
our slab of bacon. Nevertheless, Irene managed a culinary
and paddled north on the English River. We had now
masterpiece that I will never forget: German style potato
entered the part of Canada which, in older maps, lay not
pancakes. She grated raw potatoes on the bottom of a tin
in Ontario, but in the Northwest Territories. We followed
can that I had punched full of nail holes for the purpose.
the English River for almost three days without seeing a
Besides the raw potatoes, Irene used only eggs, salt, and a
single human. Then, on the third day, we spied a canoe.
little flour. Fried in butter, the edges of the pancakes took
The occupants paddled to a nearby island to wait there
on a crispness that contrasted with the solid German
for us. They turned out to be two Ojibway men on their
substance of their middles. Slathered with butter, they
way to Grassy Narrows with a deer carcass in a canoe.
were irresistible!
From their limited English, we understood that the rest of
The first of August found us camped on a small island
the band was down near Farland on the C.N.R., picking
halfway across another enlargement of the English River
berries. They also seemed worried about the portage
called Wilcox Lake. We had crossed to the island in a dead
ahead of us at Maynard Falls.
calm. The glassy water doubled the shores and provided a
We quickly forgot these concerns in the continuing
clear sky for us to paddle across, suspended in space. By
panorama of wildlife, but when we got to Maynard Falls,
night, however, the weather had clouded over and it
we remembered the hunters' warnings. Nothing seemed
rained spasmodically, only to let up in the morning. We
amiss so Irene took the first load over. She returend in a
rolled up the tent and, after a breakfast of Grapenuts and
minute. The trail was completely blocked by a deadfall.
coffee, packed up the canoe and were away.
The tangle looked just like the twister damage that had
Two arcs of blue now stretched across the sky, one
blocked the portage on Lac Seul in 1929. We explored the
directly over us and one far off to the southwest. In
barrier wearing light loads. We climbed, crawled and
between hung a distant curtain of rain that seemed to be
detoured until we reached the other side. But I didn't try
headed our way. For the time being, we roasted in the
to climb over the tangle as I had done on Lac Seul. That
sun's heat, so we paddled in the shade of the south shore
would risk breaking an arm, a leg or worse, a canoe. We
while keeping an eye on the weather to the west. A mile
cut a trail through and portaged the rest.
past Wilcox Lake, Irene spotted a deer, in Goose Lake
Going through the grub box that evening to figure out
another and, not long after that, she pointed out a big
supper, we discovered how hard the warm weather had
black cow moose that sauntered out of the water and into
been on our food supply. Mould was the enemy. It had
the bush.
spoiled two loaves of bread and had begun to creep over
By noon, the sky was growing massively black. We 114
• Daylight in the Swamp • went ashore and Irene made lunch while I put the canoe
their target. Finally, she took refuge in the tent and its
up on props, inverting, and stretching a tarp across it to
mosquito-proof curtain.
make a shelter. We had barely finished our mushroom
Clad in less penetrable clothing. I got the water boiling
soup, when the advancing curtain blotted out the far
but had to skim off a thick scum of drowning mosquitos
shore of the lake. Then she came! Wind and rain lashed
before I threw in the tea. It was then that a gentle rain
the lake. Thunder rumbled in the belly of the sky while
began to fall, spoiling our plans for an all-night paddle.
we, snug in our shelter, watched the show. When the
Pakwash, ten miles long and three to four miles wide,
storm had subsided into a steady rain, we played cards
had a reputation for treachery. As we put out from our
until the weather cleared.
campsite the next morning, a vigorous wind blew from
The next day, on Camping Lake, a minor gale whipped
the west and we had to fight hard to get to the western
the water into seas too rough for our heavily laden canoe.
shore, thereafter to stay in the lee most of our way up
When the wind dropped a bit, we set out and, in a couple
the lake.
of hours, late in the day, we reached the mouth of the
All the portages along the Chukuni were equipped
Chukuni River, the branch of the English that drains Red
with tracks and steam winches to pull over heavier boats,
Lake country. Here, we heard a dog bark and spied a man
like diesels and scows, that could never be carried past the
standing on a dock, our first human being in three and a
falls or had too deep a draft to navigate some of the
half days. Unfortunately, we had no time to be sociable.
shallower rapids. At the first of these portages, we met the
We wanted to reach the ten-mile stretch of Lake Pakwash
McLarens, a husband and wife team that operated the
by dark, then to travel its length during the calm night
winch. This was their fourth summer of running the
hours. But nature had other plans for us.
steam portage. In the winters, Mr. McLaren worked on
It was deep dusk by the time we reached Pakwash so
the road to Red Lake and cut wood to fuel the steam
we decided to stop, make a temporary camp for supper,
winch. When we confessed to Mrs. McLaren that we had
then press on up the lake. In the darkness we spied a
run out of bread, she invited us into her kitchen where we
sandy point of land, made for it, and beached the canoe.
greeted the aroma of two loaves a-baking. Mr. McLaren,
By the time we got a fire going, it was obvious that a
meanwhile, had me lift the canoe onto the railcar which
horde of hungry mosquitoes had been keeping a fast just
already held a barge to go over shortly. The ride was free
for our arrival. They savagely attacked Irene's bottom
and, by the time the canoe had been deposited at the
each time she bent over the fire—probably at the
other end, our bread was baked.
prospect of light cotton slacks stretched invitingly over 115
The remaining portages that day were not so easy, but
• Daylight in the Swamp • by dark we found ourselves at the bottom of a long
Here we found the temptations of civilization and we
stretch of open water. It looked perfect for the all-night
succumbed. We gorged ourselves on ice cream and cold
paddle of which I had dreamed since the beginning of the
drinks, then ran into Harvey and Les Sanderson, sons of
honeymoon. We stopped for a meal, then re-packed the
Canon Sanderson and known to me from Kenora days.
canoe so that one of us could sleep while the other
They inveigled us into attending the matinee at a local
paddled. It was a perfect night. We needed no compass
theatre which turned out to be a converted barn with
but the North Star. The water was as smooth as glass,
enough benches inside to accommodate some fifty patrons.
meteors would blaze briefly overhead and Irene went to
It was a good old cowboy film entitled Muss 'em Up I
sleep while owls hooted from distant shores.
Red Lake brought back memories of my Lac Seul days
Passing a point of land, I heard a crackling, rustling,
when I had paddled all the way up to hold the first
munching sound from the shore nearby, too much noise
Protestant service the town had experienced. I even
for anything but a moose. I awakened Irene and we
recalled for Irene the Sunday morning I went the rounds
paddled slowly toward the noise. When we shone the
to announce the service. One of my first calls was at the
flashlight in the direction of the sound, a beautiful cow
barber's shack. The door was locked but I could hear
moose stood in the light, unperturbed. The spell was only
someone inside. I made my announcement through what
broken when I said something to Irene. The cow lifted her
turned out to be a bedroom window: "There'll be a
majestic head with its wide ears, picked her way carefully
service at the hotel at eleven o'clock."
through a tangle of wood and bounded away into the dark
"Get the fucking hell out of here or I'll blow your
of the forest. We could hear her stop in the distance to
fucking head off," came the unmannerly response. This
stamp her foot and snort, letting us know in no uncertain
was followed by a woman's giggle. "Oh. S-s-sorry," I
terms just what she thought of the interruption.
stuttered.
Red Lake at last! Hot, tired and thirsty, paddling into a
Judging from our 1937 honeymoon visit, Red Lake
stiff wind, we saw the headframe of the Howey Mine over
had grown but hadn't changed much in other respects.
the hill. We passed Ojibway camps on either side, while
More than ever, it was a queer mixture of modern
the town gradually revealed itself. First came the log
civilization and the bush. Now a town of two or three
cabins of the early comers, the more recent frame
thousand people, owned and operated by the Howey
buildings, including three hotels, the Hudson's Bay Store,
Mine, it reeked of materialism. Two brothels ran full
warehouses and docks. Half a dozen float planes rode at
steam and nobody seemed to give a damn about
anchor in the bay.
anything. Its bay accommodated enough aircraft to set a
116
• Daylight in the Swamp • record for the largest numbers of takeoffs and landings in
English River route in reverse. Only one incident stands
North America, one every fifteen minutes on average. Its
out: The portage landing at Drowning Dam had a steep
dusty streets accommodated half a dozen trucks,
clay bank. We unloaded the canoe on a shelf of grass and
including a '38 Ford that belonged to Flin-Flon Annie,
rock, picked up our loads and started up the bank. Irene,
recently written up in Liberty Magazine.
carrying the bedroll and tent, went first. I followed with
During our two days in Red Lake, Irene and I stayed
the grub box and a top load that contained our paper,
with the Littlefords, enjoying the luxury of a real bed.
books, chess set, and so on. Almost at the very top of the
Reverend Littleford, whose first name I have forgotten,
bank, Irene slipped. The tent fell away, then the bedroll. I
was the local Anglican minister. I'll never forget his wife's
grabbed for the bedroll as it bounced by but lost my own
name: "Halcyon". It was appropriate.
load in the process. I managed to save the grub box after
The return to Kenora was no less various, gruelling
two tumbles but the rest went merrily into the river. In a
and rewarding than the trip to Red Lake had been. But it
trice I had the canoe into the water and got everything—
all seems a blur now and just the highlights seem worth
thoroughly soaked. Fortunately it was a good drying day.
mentioning. We left Red Lake in mid-afternoon only to
We left the English River behind to try an unfamiliar
be hailed a few miles out by two homesteaders who
route back to Kenora. We followed the Cedar River to
invited us to stay the night. They were Bob Kilgower, a
Anonymous Lake with its acres of wild rice, then further
thirty-year old unemployed engineer, and Wes Forsythe,
upstream to Wahbuskang Lake where we encountered a
who had been his boyhood friend in rural Manitoba. Wes,
brisk favouring wind. We went ashore where I found and
a burnt out prairie farmer, had brought his wife, a lean
cut two light spruce poles and rigged a sail in the
prairie woman. She was especially hospitable and seemed
Hudson's Bay manner. We sailed down the lake in fine
to us to be the source of her husband's courage in starting
style until the wind got so strong, we had to take the rig
up all over again with nothing more than the shirt on his
down. Here we found two wonderful camp sites that have
back. They had come in by tractor during the winter,
merged into one in my memory. I would revisit the lake
cleared fifteen acres, and had planted potatoes, beans and
many years later with our eldest son, Donner, only to
corn with an eye to the Red Lake market. But the soil was
discover how different the sites were. Ironically, it was
not responding and they were gloomy about the future,
here that we planned to conceive Donner under the pines,
the more because Bob's woman was not enchanted with
but he didn't appear until 1939.
country living. On the first leg of our return journey, we followed the 117
On the portage out of Cedar Lake, we ran into an odd couple, a lawyer and his wife from Cincinnati. The
• Daylight in the Swamp • wife was a thin woman with horn-rimmed glasses,
process. They watched intently as we zoomed down the
fisherman's hat wrapped in flowing black silk, a brown
chute into a sharp bend where the water piled high on the
sweater buttoned to the top, and corded breeches. The
left bank, cleared a huge boulder that jutted out of
lawyer was dressed in equally picturesque style. They
midstream, and went bounding on our merry way. To this
were accompanied by two guides one of whom, Art
day I carry the memory of the slope of water on that
Williams, I had known at Lac Seul. I didn't take them
bend. There's something distinctly unsettling about water
very seriously until they mentioned that they had spent
that slants.
their summers this way every year. They had been up to
The weather had been so fabulous throughout the trip
Lake St. Joe and half a dozen other places seeking respite
that we might have expected it would deny us the dash
from human contact but rarely finding it. The next day
for home. When we came to the formidable Dalles Rapids
we ran into a lone traveler who had once guided for the
on the Winnipeg River, it began to rain. Gamely, we
pair. He told us that the wife insisted that the guides
started out on the portage only to find a bewildering
make up a table for her to eat from at every stop, to
number of paths. We wandered into a clearing with a few
spread it with an oil-cloth, and to fold it in a special way
houses in it and realized we had wandered into a nearby
each time they broke camp.
reserve. Discouraged, we trudged back to the head of the
As we headed south we encountered more and more
portage and made a damp camp.
tourists, then the occasional summer cottage. Finally we
In the morning it was still raining and we didn't get
came to our old route again, went under the railroad
away until one o'clock. And there were more obstacles.
tracks and retraced Canyon River and Canyon Lake. We
Ridout Bay was full of pulp logs. We had to pull the canoe
crossed a series of lakes and portages that took us into
over the boom logs several times. Our last portage took
Silver Lake which we crossed at night, portaging at one in
us around the Norman Dam where we ran into a stiff
the morning. By August 19, our 27th day out, we could
current that slowed our approach to Lake of the Woods
hear the whistle of the mill in Kenora. After Sturgeon
proper and Tunnel Island. But there was Kenora Bay,
Lake, we came to the Black Sturgeon River, passed under
framed in strong sunlight against dark clouds. And there
the Kenora-Reditt road bridge, and found ourselves
at last was the boathouse!
approaching a rapids. No portage was marked on the
So ended our honeymoon and Irene's canoe
map. Daring to hope that we could reach Kenora by
apprenticeship. It was a far cry from those tentative forays
nightfall, we inspected the rapids. They looked shootable,
in the lagoon of Victoria Park in Kitchener when she had
so down we went, giving some tourists a thrill in the
panicked at gliding under an overhanging tree. Now she 118
• Daylight in the Swamp
Figure 36. Irene whittling, 1937
119
Daylight in the Swamp was a canoe partner who could be counted on to face any situation,
one whose
paddle
stroke
perfectly
complemented mine. But there was more to it: Ever after, Irene would dream that some day we would find a place of our own in this incredibly beautiful land, an island remote from roads. We would bring our children and they would bring their children. All could find what she had found.
Figure 37, Newspaper report of Selwyn and Irene Dewdney's canoe trip from Kenora to Red Lake and back, in Kenora Miner & News, Friday, August 20, 1937.
120
chapter ten
Men and Boys in the Mountains
Slim lived on the spot for five years and had 120 acres of
revolution and had emigrated to England where young
good land directly facing Mt. Selwyn, surveyed and deeded.
Nicholas, the eldest of the count's sons, received his
He'll sell the place for $300 and there is no one else after it
education. Now he taught at Upper Canada College in
except Nick who says he couldn't manage it for another
Toronto. Ignatieff planned a new expedition for the summer of
three or four years. So I said I'd take it up and give him an option on half of it.
1938. He proposed to explore the Cassiar Mountains of northern British Columbia, going in by way of Prince
From a letter to Irene, Finlay Forks, B.C., July 14th, 1938
George, Summit Lake, and the Crooked, Parsnip, and One Sunday evening in 1937, Irene and I heard
Finlay Rivers. He wanted to include the route followed by
Nicholas Ignatieff, then a young teacher at Upper
Alexander MacKenzie from the Peace River Pass at the
Canada College, describe two expeditions of the
Finlay Forks to the north bend of the Fraser River. Twelve
Schools' Exploration Society. In one expedition the
boys from four private schools would go along.
Society had travelled by canoe out of Lake Mistassini in
The whole idea excited me enough to write Ignatieff
Quebec Nouveau, in the other it had explored by
for an appointment. I travelled to Toronto, met him, and
schooner up the Stikine River in Northern B.C. In both
returned to London as the assistant leader of the
expeditions the society had successfully mapped an
expedition, official artist, and unofficial geologist. The
unexplored area of Canada.
expedition would dovetail perfectly with Irene's plans to
Ignatieff's father, Count Ignatieff, former Czarist
visit relatives in Germany. Her German-born father,
minister of education, had fled Russia during the 1917
Gustave, had been saving on her behalf for many months.
121
• Daylight in the Swamp Our Christmas card for that year shows Irene against a
trip to Prince George contains a lesson for people who
Rhine River background and me against Mt. Selwyn
take this country for granted. One day I came upon
(surname of the surveyor who had discovered it).
Ignatieff in the vestibule, his head as far out the window as he could get it, careless of the cinders that came flying by from our coal-powered locomotive. He turned around to look at me, his eyes glowing with joy. "Just smell that prairie air!" Perhaps there was nostalgia for him, memories of boyhood trips over the Russian steppes. As a fourth-generation Canadian, I always feel a bit shamed by immigrants who embrace their new land with an enthusiasm many of us lack. When we arrived in Prince George, we were met by Dick Corless, a freight agent of sorts. Corless ran freight by truck to Summit Lake, by wagon to the head of the Crooked River, then downstream by kicker-powered flatbottomed boat. He supplied the straggling fur posts and embryo settlements as far north as Fort Ware on the Finlay River. Everything had been arranged, and a couple of days later we found ourselves floating down the Crooked River in two boats with most of our supplies and all our gear.
Figure 38. Christmas card made by Selwyn Dewdney, 1938
We had two guides, one running each boat. One of the guides, Slim Cowart, was a veteran of the river. He made
En route to the Mountains, our expedition travelled
all the important decisions. The other guide, whose name
by CNR with a whole coach to itself. It was one of the old
I've forgotten, was much younger but well versed in the
colonist cars with horsehair-padded seats that could be
bush. He came equipped, moreover, with a repertoire of
folded down to make a bed. No Pullman service: We had
scatological, obscene, and blasphemous bush ballads that
our own bedrolls and we did our cooking on the stove in
went well beyond the imagination of any liberated young
the centre of the coach. My most vivid recollection of the
urbanite. I mustn't forget the recent medical school
122
Daylight in the Swamp Figure 39, Cabins on Finlay River, 1938
graduate that everyone called Smitty. He joined the
who would rather spend the day in camp playing cards.
expedition as our official medical officer.
But as I got tp know the boys better, these two groups
The boys that made up the main body of the
subdivided further. Two lads stood head and shoulders
expedition were as mixed a lot as one could imagine.
above the others: Hal Davison and Hugh Gallic.
The variations reflected, among other things, the wide
Davison put his weight into everything he did and
range of motives that well-heeled parents might have
displayed a rare wit besides. He later became a test
for sending their kids to a private school. Some obviously wanted to get problem kids off their backs. Others wanted their children to have the career advantage of knowing the right people. Still others felt that public education gave little room for individual character building. Some no doubt followed a family tradition that went back to the British class system. As revealed by their behaviour in the bush, the boys appeared to fall into one of two groups: those who wanted to climb the surrounding mountains and those
123
Figure 40.
Finlay Forks , 1938
Daylight in the Swamp pilot, and it was a tragedy for everyone
F i g u r e 41
Hal Davison, 1938
who knew him when he died early
everyone in spasms, Monty would complain, "Sure. I could say exactly
in World War II during a test
the same thing and nobody would
flight. Hugh Gallic went into
laugh." As the weeks went by the
medicine; when I met him him
other boys began to go out of their
accidently five years after the
way to exacerbate the situation.
expedition I discovered
On principle, Ignatieff never
the
excellent human being I would have
intervened.
predicted. On the expedition, Galllie
discipline too often produced the
was indefatigably
opposite
cooperative,
responsible, and intelligent in the best sense of the word. Tops, in short, as a bush companion. Not all the lads displayed the fine qualities of a Davison or a Gallic. Others come to mind as
He believed that
result.
If
Monty
appreciated this attitude, he showed it in a peculiar way. One day we were camped on the Finlay River near some cabins called Bergman's Place. Here the Finlay made a big bend and here we had assembled
exemplars of less the desirable directions that human
horses to take us across the river and up into the Cassiar
nature can take. Ignatieff assigned duties to each of the
Mountains. Bower Creek, a fast, ice-cold mountain
boys. To a lad I'll call Monty, he assigned the job of
stream some twenty-five yards wide, ran into the Finlay
weather recorder. Nick gave him a wet- and dry-bulb
just by the camp. Here Ignatieff decided to bathe. No
hygrometer to record humidity, an air thermometer to
sooner had he stripped off his clothes and waded gingerly
record temperature, and a few other instruments. I
into the current than two boys decided to make off with
added the suggestion that Monty record wind direction
his clothes. In the meantime, Ignatieff waded across the
and cloud forms. But Monty wasn't interested. The next
stream to untie a small rowboat there, intending to pole it
day he accidently smashed the thermometer and that
back across the water. But he hadn't reckoned on the
ended his weather duties.
swiftness of the current. The instant he pushed off, the
Throughout our travels, Monty proved to be a
current whisked the boat downstream, completely out of
talented grumbler. When I made out a dishwashing
control. Ignatieff stood, stark naked, balancing himself
schedule he swore that his turn came oftener than anyone
precariously in the middle of the boat as it pitched and
else's. When Hal came up with a witticism that had
rolled, heading for the first bend. A second later, pole still 124
Figure 42. Hugh Gallie, 1938
Daylight in the Swamp braced the boat successfully for a full minute. Then the stream slowly had its way. The boat lurched under the overhang. Ignatieff, impaled on half a dozen broken branch-ends, made a heroic last-ditch effort to save the ship. He staggered to the bow which promptly went under water. This dragged man and boat under the tree where Ignatieff could no longer balance the craft. He splashed ingloriously into the water while the boat careened into the Finlay and out of sight. With chattering teeth and blue skin, Ignatieff made his way barefooted over the harsh gravel bank to the place upstream where he'd left his clothes. The thieves had stayed in the background, leaving only Monty to stand where the clothes had been. Monty laughed his raucous, Figure 43,
Mountain pack horse, Jake
adolescent laugh. Ignatieff took him for the culprit, and
in hand, Ignatieff was swept into a projecting deadfall and
with amazing good humour, began merely to splash him
here began a struggle so ludicrous that the whole camp,
with water. So Monty retaliated with mud. At this point
watching from the shore, became hysterical with laughter.
one of the boys realized that the fun was pretty much
The current was steady and insistent. It pulled
over and brought back Ignatieff's clothes. I shared
Ignatieff into the sharp snags of dead and broken spruce
Ignatieff's feelings about discipline, but my one regret
branches, scraping and poking his skin so badly that he
over the whole affair was that no one came up behind
began to panic. He must have realized that this same
Monty and pushed him into the stream for the ducking
unfriendly tree was his last chance to save himself before
he so richly deserved.
he and the boat would be swept around the bend into the
One other example of the strangely developed
Finlay. He would travel down the Finlay to the Peace
personality was a lad I'll call Milty. An earnest youth, full
River, down the Peace into the McKenzie River, then to
of enthusiasm, Milty was nevertheless too erratic to carry
the Arctic Ocean. Stark naked.
anything he undertook to a conclusion. One of my duties
Thrust against the unsympathetic deadfall, his skin a
as expedition geologist was to fan any spark of interest
brilliant pink against the sombre branches, Ignatieff
shown by any boy in the geology of the country. Milty 726
Daylight in the Swamp was the only boy who ever came to me. It wasn't long
impression of a face smudged with soot. And to top it all,
before he was showing up over and over again with one
he wore a purple scout-style hat tied around his chin with
piece of rock or another in his hand. "Geez!" he would
a leather lace.
shout in my ear. "Isn't this a swell piece of mica?"
Poor Milty! In spite of the thousands of dollars spent
Substitute the name of any rock or mineral that I taught
on his education and travels abroad, he remained a lad
him to identify and there was Milty. "Geez! Wouldn't this
with only one consuming passion—his collection of
be a swell piece to take back to my science master!" He
matchbook covers.
would often follow such remarks with a series of whoops
In the final sketch for my gallery of characters I
that sounded like a cross between a coyote's howl and a
present the boy we called Bones. On the horse trail he
cowboy's yodel.
fastidiously picked his way around the wet spots. On
Milty was also enthusiastic about providing
dishwashing duty he meticulously examined each dish for
unsolicited information. For example, once Slim was in
microscopic particles of dirt before drying it. In
the middle of telling the boys how a good placer miner
conversation he interspersed carefully cultivated British
could still make a living washing gold out of the Finlay
"ah" sounds (as in "and" and "half") into an otherwise
above Deserter's Canyon. The irrepressible Milty
Canadian accent. As expedition accountant he would
interrupted with, "Geez! Didja know they sometimes use
spend a whole afternoon trying to track down the four
a helluva big water wheel with buckets on it and the
cents he needed to balance the books.
current turns the wheel and raises the buckets on it and
Curiously, Bones was the prefect of his house at school
they use that instead of a pump." Here he slowed down,
and something of an athlete, as well as a scholar. Yet his
then looked around. "Don't they?"
manner was so mild I couldn't visualize him lecturing a
The most cursory sketch of Milty would be
lower school boy, let alone caning him. (Yes, they still
incomplete without a reference to his beard. To begin
aped the English system at Upper Canada College.)
with, Milty was a small lad with a dark complexion and a
Twice, however, he showed us another side of his mild
pair of heavy, dark eyebrows which beetled into each
personality. On the more (literally) striking occasion, two
other across his forehead. He stopped shaving when we
of the lads were indulging in some rough horseplay in the
left Prince George, and gradually the black hairs, singly
boat. One of them, probably on purpose, rolled over on
and in groups, crept down the sides of his face. They
Bones. Instantly our English gentleman turned into a
sprouted on his chin and groped around the corners of
snarling beast, jabbing the unfortunate romper with
his mouth. No amount of washing could eradicate the
shrewdly placed jabs of the elbow. The other's anger
127
• Daylight in the Swamp • flared in response and for a few moments there was
decisions, the group follows the leadership of the person
murder in the air. For a tense moment the only audible
with the most skill or experience.
sound was the throbbing of the outboard motor. The two
What I am also describing, of course, is the informal
suddenly became aware of a disapproving aspect in the
organization of a small band of hunter-gatherers in an
silence of the onlooking crowd and hostility subsided.
environment where winter survival is an annual problem.
The expedition provided examples of human
This may be why there are no "chiefs" among the
behaviour under stress—both good and bad—and led
northern, Algonkian-speaking peoples such as the Cree,
me to reflect that for any and all social relationships in a
Ojibway, and Montagnais-Naskapi; there is only a
bush setting, the ideal rule might be called bush
temporary leadership that varies with the period and
democracy. Whether it's two couples on a holiday canoe
nature of the situation.
trip or a dozen men on a survey party, bush democracy
Ignatieff would certainly have subscribed to bush
ensures both a minimum of friction and a maximum of
democracy. He hoped for as much, at least, from our
efficiency. The essence of all democracies is the willing
small, male "band". But too many boys came from
assumption of responsibility by the individuals that
indulgent homes and too many lacked the bush skills and
compose it. If a society comes to depend on a minority
experience to make bush democracy work. But it spoke
of specialists and specialist organizations, whether in
well for Ignatieff's leadership that only two emergency
labour, business, or education, the society can expect to
situations arose that summer. He could have prevented
achieve nothing more than cosmetic democracy. This
neither of them.
regardless of provisions to limit the power of the elite.
One of the emergencies developed a few miles up the
The larger the "society", the greater the disaffection of its
Finlay when one of the Robertson brothers developed
individual members who find their vote counting for
symptoms that our camp doctor, Smitty, diagnosed as
less and less.
appendicitis. A guide took doctor and patient by boat to
By contrast, in a small group in a setting where
the Finlay Forks where Smitty wired Prince George for a
anything from extreme discomfort to survival can be at
plane. By one o'clock the plane had picked them up and
issue, it becomes amply clear who is pulling his weight
by two-thirty Smitty had performed a successful
and who is not. In practice, each member sees a job to be
appendectomy in the Prince George hospital.
done and takes it on without orders. Decisions are made
Smitty and the guide returned later in the day. They
by looking at hard facts, discussing alternatives and
had landed, switched to the boat, and travelled to the
arriving at a consensus. In situations calling for instant
beach below Deserter's Canyon. Here, the water tumbled 728
Daylight in the Swamp swiftly out of the canyon from the head of the rapids upstream, where the rest of the crew waited at the head of a portage. Smitty and the guide pulled the boat onto the beach and brought their gear up to the head of the portage. Returning with the others to pick up the remaining baggage, we arrived just in time to see boat and all dancing down the river, cheerfully headed for the Arctic ocean. The water level at the beach apparently fluctuated a good deal, even in the space of a day. It had persuaded the boat to go on an expedition of its own. We ran back up the portage, and within minutes our second boat was shooting down the canyon rapids, on its way to the rescue. They finally found the runaway. Only its nose was visible, sticking out of a jam of driftwood and defying all our efforts to extricate it. Cameras and other expensive gear were a dead loss, as well as the boat. The cream of the trip that summer began at Fort Ware, a Hudson's Bay post where a number of the Sekani people, too old or too young for trapping, had their
F i g u r e 44. Sekani Woman - Fort MacLeod, 1 9 3 8
cabins. I made a sketch of a little boy who was
sometimes we had to stop early for the day rather than try
contemplatively sucking on a freshly caught trout. The
to make the next meadow by midnight. One early stop
sketch turned out rather well, and thereafter I became the
found us at the foot of a mountain ridge, and I decided to
expedition's official artist. I worked in pencil sketches
go up to see what was on the other side. As I neared the
during odd moments and painted mountain subjects
tree-line, I met organized resistance from the junipers,
whenever we took a day off.
but once I got though them, the way was clear to the top.
We secured the supplies to our packhorses with the
Finally, straddling the ridge, I looked into another world:
famous diamond hitch, then set off along a horse trail
vista upon vista of treeless valleys, naked crests and ridges
that cut across the northernmost bend of the Finlay.
reaching into the blue distance. Empty at my feet, with
Pasturage for the horses determined our campsites and
only reindeer moss, lichens and low shrubs, and empty in
129
• Daylight in the Swamp • the distance, with no living creature in sight. It was like a
I'm normally a pragmatic type, not given to flights of
land that God forgot, except for the space. It opened
fantasy, meditational indulgences, or psychic vibrations.
outward and outward into infinity itself. It brought,
But the structure then above us and around us
strangely enough, an intense awareness of my own
transcended any conceivable human dimensions. It
presence, the only visible being in all that immensity.
seemed the habitation of a Great Presence, gigantic in
On the way up the Finlay, an even more awesome
scale, beyond comprehension. And although it reduced us
experience awaited me. It began along a horse trail that
to the significance of microscopic worms, it brought
had originally given access to an abortive mining
exaltation, as if we had joined the heavenly host at the
operation on Mica Mountain. We hobbled the horses in a
birth of Jesus.
meadow, then made an easy climb to the top, taking our
One other experience remains indelibly impressed on
bedrolls, but no tents. We assumed there'd be no
my memory. The expedition's objective was to explore an
mosquitoes at the higher altitudes. When we got to the
area of the Cassiar mountains that had remained blank
top, the weather was perfect for sleeping out under the
on official maps, its highest peak unnamed and
stars, but the mosquitoes, naturally, were present in great
uncharted. When we arrived at the mountain, Ignatieff,
numbers.
Slim Cowart and a few of the boys climbed the peak to
As sometimes happens, however, the annoyance was
establish its altitude, latitude, and longitude. Meanwhile, I
prelude to a wonderful experience. The mosquitos had
descended to the foot of the mountain to paint by the
kept us awake just long enough to realize what was
shore of a tiny blue lake. Here I made two of the best oil
happening over our heads. Then like ushers, they retired.
sketches of the summer. One included the lake and a
It was the most amazing display of northern lights
thousand-foot cascade of meltwater from the glacier
that I have ever beheld. As a boy in Prince Albert I had
above, the other framed the peak of the mountain in the
seen the shimmering green and red curtains hanging in
patterns of ice and snow from which it emerged. Ignatieff
the midwinter night sky almost routinely. But this was
and the boys could not have chosen a more appropriate
unique. Great white sheets of light shot clear to the
name for the mountain. Mount Cowart honoured Slim,
zenith. Within seconds we became the minuscule
the unassuming, patient man who had spent a lifetime in
occupants of a great, shivering tent some fifty miles high.
this corner of God's country, learning the ways of its
This tent of light surrounded the whole mountain,
rivers and mountains.
shaking as in a mighty and invisible wind. It billowed and waved, but remained fixed firmly to its pole at the zenith.
On my way back to the camp I climbed above the timber line where the going was easier, then followed it
130
Daylight in the Swamp until I figured I was above the camp. On the way, I saw no
Speaking of rum, Alexander MacKenzie had brought a
sign of the others. I became uneasy. I had heard that
few kegs along on his trip to the Pacific in 1793. Did that
grizzly bears also liked to follow the timber line so I kept
explain the extraordinary discrepancies we found
up a lively whistling to give due notice of my approach.
between his data and ours? Ascending the Peace River
Passing a large clump of bushes, my head high, I caught a
with "Canadians" (his name for the mixed-blood
sudden glimpse of brown fur and my heart leapt into my
voyageurs), he reached Finlay Forks, then turned south to
throat. I was about to run for my life when the great
travel up the Parsnip and Crooked Rivers to Summit
predatory beast emerged. It was a whistler, the mountain
Lake, then over the height of land to the northernmost
version of a woodchuck.
bend of the Fraser River. Ignatieff had brought along the
Other memories of the expedition crowd into mind:
portion of MacKenzie's diary that recorded compass
Walking with Hugh Gallic one day in advance of the
directions and distances as he ascended the Parsnip and
horses, we came to an icy creek, a paralysing cold and
Finlay. On three occasions we recognized landmarks
deep torrent that almost swept us off our feet. It was a
mentioned by MacKenzie and each time we checked his
long day, with other streams to wade across and dirty
records against our observations. We spent hours trying
weather, to boot. We were all exhausted. That's when
to reconcile the two sets of figures. For example, when he
Ignatieff pulled out a bottle of rum. When my turn came
put down a "mile and a half SW" for a certain stretch of
I was amazed to find that I gulped it down like water.
river, we found it demanded three or four readings and as
Figure 45. Little Canada, 1938
131
• Daylight in the Swamp • many changes of direction. Was he just averaging a
drop. But not before noting that MacKenzie had probably
number of turns into a single generalized course? Or
relied totally on the skill and bush experience of his
perhaps the River didn't meander back in 1793. Given the
"Canadian" canoemen. His main contribution to
rocky nature of the country, that didn't compute either.
Canadian history in any case lay in his stubborn will as a
On the other hand, Mackenzie occasionally mentions rum and falling asleep from time to time, even losing an
Scot to accept no compromise in his determination to reach the sea.
instrument overboard during one sleepy spell. Is it
Travelling through river valleys we noted with
possible that the great explorer cooked his notes? Loath to
curiosity that they resembled prairie country more than
believe in such chicanery, Ignatieff and I let the matter
mountain interiors. Quite frequently river terraces shut out the view of bordering mountains. Only on Mica Mountain did we achieve the vista I had imagined. We had a perspective northward along the whole Rocky mountain trench. We were high enough that the faraway ridges of peaks resembled a great ploughed field, as if the Paul Bunyan and his famed blue ox, Babe, had made gigantic furrows across the land. This was to be my last grand view of the mountains. The summer of 1938 was drawing to a close and I couldn't wait to see Irene again. The fourth annual expedition of the Schools Exploration Society was its last. I met Irene in New York when she came off the ship Columbus, one of the last to make a transatlantic crossing before war broke out. Irene told me about her visit to Germany, especially the military buildup. There had been troops everywhere and aircraft flying overhead at speeds she had never imagined possible. She was happy to have the Atlantic between herself and Hitler's Germany. The war that followed ended our dream of a
Figure 46, From Mica Mountain, 1938
mountain wilderness home. It was not we who acquired 732
Daylight in the Swamp the Wicked River property but Nick and his new wife, Helene. For a few years it was their idyllic retreat. But then Ignatieff died of a heart attack, leaving an only son, also called Nick. Young Nick knew better than anyone that no one could replace his father. Gentle, imaginative, and practical, Nicholas Ignatieff had led by example, abhorring those who merely commanded. He was a visionary who could see the other side of the mountain, then go there with a plane table and transit, and put it on the map. He was among the few who in my opinion can be called great Canadians.
Figure 47, From Mica Mountain, 1938
133
This page intentionally left blank
chapter eleven
Packing on the Pic
AM OUT OF BUSH POCKETS BULGING WITH CASH STOP WILL YOU WIRE ME AT HERON BAY AS TO DATE SCHOOL OPENS STOP IF OPENING IS DELAYED WILL PAINT FOR A DAY OR TWO LONGER Night letter to Irene, Peninsula, Ont. Sept. 2,1943.
Teaching in Ontario secondary schools in the 1940s was about as lucrative as supervising garbage collection or working as a plumber's assistant. As well, prewar salaries were paid by the working month so that summer holidays always created a financial chasm that somehow had to be bridged. Every June, as I now remember the process, I'd go to the bank and crawl into the manager's office on my hands and knees. "Please help me keep a roof over my starving wife and children." After an eternity of grave consideration, he would let a few dollars slip through his fingers. Nowadays the bank managers are the ones on their hands and knees. "How much would you Figure 48.
like? Five thousand? Ten thousand?" 135
Christmas card made by Selwyn Dewdney
• Daylight in the Swamp • The idea that painting could supplement our income
through pulpwood. But after the truck had rumbled off, I
still lingered. Already, however, it had become mainly the
found myself dealing with large British Columbia timber
expression of my love for the country. I never made a real
booms, very tricky to pull Olga over. For an hour I
effort to sell my work. About all it did for us financially
managed to squeeze my way through a narrow channel
was to save the cost of store-bought presents.
between the outside booms and the shore. But then I
On the other hand, I knew that my bush background
turned a bend and saw more and more pulpwood,
would be an asset in the labour-starved north. The
stretching indefinitely ahead. Discouraged, I came ashore
previous summer I had run into a prospector by the
at an Indian reservation and portaged across to the Heron
name of Jack Ennis at Lake Missinaibi. He had promised
Bay road. Here, by happy coincidence, I ran into Jack
me a job with his diamond drilling operation on Lake
Ennis himself. He took me aboard his truck, Olga in the
Superior. I sent him a number of letters, some registered,
back, and drove down to the mouth of the Pic at Lake
to confirm the arrangement, but Ennis never replied. My
Superior. Fortunately the Lake was in one of its more
hand forced, I decided to go up anyway I took the CPR
relaxed moods. Ennis towed Olga behind his kicker.
train to Nicholson, where I got my canoe, Olga, out of
At Jack's camp I found three big tents, all with board
storage. I boarded the very next train to come along, put
floors and secured on two-by-four frames. Jack occupied
Olga in the baggage car, and got off again some fifty miles
one, his diamond drilling equipment took up the other
up the line at Heron Bay on the Pic (Ojibway for "mud")
two. He had been waiting two weeks for word that he
River. Heron Bay consisted of a hotel, a store, and not
could renew his drilling operation. Jack had run up
much else. I planned to put Olga into the Pic wherever
against an age-old dilemma, but one that most
feasible, paddle to the mouth of the Pic, then follow the
prospectors would love to encounter. Not gold, in his
Lake Superior shore for five miles to Playter Harbour
case, but molybdenum. He had found so much that to
where Ennis had his drilling operation.
mine all of it might bring the price down.
In Heron Bay I had the good fortune to run into an
He took me up to see the claim. He had staked out a
Ontario Paper Company truck driver who agreed to take
wide, deep molybdenum-bearing quartz vein that ran
Olga and me to the banks of the Pic. He told me I'd run
underground for about a mile. It was relatively rich, too: a
into a bit of pulpwood before we got to the mouth of the
vein only had to show a quarter of one percent
Pic, but I thought nothing of it. After all, I had fooled
molybdenum to be economic, but Jack's ran to 2 percent.
around in the booms on Kenora Bay and knew how to lift
He said that if he got the green light to drill deeper he'd
the canoe over boom logs, and how to push my way
be happy to take me on as crew. He pointed out that if he
136
• Daylight in the Swamp • had still heard nothing in the next few days, I could
commitment to bush life. The last verse goes like this:
always get a job rafting on the Pic River for Mike Chernovsky's outfit. The latter paid $100 a month and all
Then the sun's bright blaze dispersed the haze
found (including five meals a day) for five to seven hours
From out the crimson dawn
of work a day. I never did find out just what rafting
So I shouldered my pack and hit the trail
entailed, but I suspect it meant making and breaking up
That ever leads on and on.
booms of pulp logs. During the few days I spent in Ennis's camp, I
Some of the pictures I sketched or painted during my
sketched, split wood, and wrote letters. Once I wrote
stay with Jack included him as a subject. This pleased him
Irene, "Here I am, sitting under the same roof as Jack in a
immensely. I made two pencil sketches of Jack and a
big fourteen by seventeen tent. We are both writing, Jack
watercolour of him with the camp in the background. He
transcribing verse into ink from pencil copies. His two
wanted me to sketch the cook at Chernovsky's camp. This
preventatives against getting bushed are poetry and
man, it turned out, had been especially good to Jack after
sculpture: he has a set of tools and carves anything he
his return, only ten days ago, from the hospital. This
sees, in wood."
explained why he had answered none of my letters, but
Unfortunately, Jack was inspired neither as a poet nor
why had he gone to the hospital in the first place? Jack
as a sculptor. I cannot easily describe his carving, but I
was a bit vague about it. In fact, I didn't find out until the
did copy out one of his poems. His style owed something,
end of the summer.
I think, to Robert Service:
Orders to drill had still not come to Ennis when he finally decided it would be better for me to work for
MEMORIES
Chernovsky. He sent word that I was available and, within a day, Chernovsky arranged a job for me with General
I stand on the mount of memories
Timber, a big American logging outfit. Ennis drove me
And gaze at the crimson dawn
back to Heron Bay and I boarded a train for the short
Afar on fields that spread like shields
ride to Peninsula, a coaling stop on the CPR with a
My thoughts carry thither and yon.
marvellous view of Lake Superior. Here I found a bunkhouse mentioned by Warniker, the company
This poem, which continues for several verses,
representative. As I waited for the Pic River boat to arrive,
expresses a heartfelt loneliness struggling with a romantic
I pondered my situation. Soon I would be going up Pic
137
• Daylight in the Swamp • River where I would pack grub for the camps at four
whenever I found a subject I liked. For two or three weeks
dollars a day all found and a bonus of five cents an hour if
I enjoyed the relative luxury of supplying bush camps
I finished out the season with General Timber. In this
along the river. I would then run my load down the river
case, "all found" meant that the company would supply
in a small kicker, free of flies and the incipient
food and accommodation, my only other needs being
claustrophobia of constant travel through dense forest.
occasional clothing and tobacco.
I'll return to the story of my employment with the
"Why should men pack when horses might do as well?" you may ask. As you may have gathered from
American Timber Company after a few general remarks about the company and the land.
previous chapters, horses are unsuited to the Shield
For reasons that weren't entirely clear to me, the
environment. Draught horses were certainly useful to
General Timber Company had hired a lot of New
haul logs over frozen muskeg and lakes during winters in
Englanders to work on their logging operation along the
the forested north, but in the summer packhorses were
Pic. It may have been due to the manpower shortage
useless. Even in the expedition to the Cassiar Mountains
created by Canada's four year involvement in the war. But
of British Columbia we had used packhorses only on
it may also have been due to the novel nature of their
well-established trails through relatively open country.
pulp logging operation. Back in the 1920s wood was still
So, here on the Pic River, men were the pack-horses.
being used in the manufacture of sturdy boxes. But by the
I had already served an apprenticeship packing with
1930s most stands of red and white pine had been
the Geological Survey of Canada. But this work was more
exhausted. Escalating demand for paper began to eat
specialized. It was just as well that I packed alone for the
heavily into seemingly endless supplies of spruce and the
first few weeks, before I was joined by two fresh
coarser jackpine. Not surprisingly, box production shifted
employees of the American Timber Company. This
from wood to cardboard. The New Englanders may have
enabled me to get the basics down and work myself into
been more experienced at cruising for those trees most
shape: All I had to do was carry supply loads of sixty to
useful in the new kraft-and-cardboard industry. Poplar
ninety pounds from a base camp on the river off to more
pulp made excellent kraft paper and cardboard boxes for
temporary camps in the bush. I would follow trails blazed
everything from beer to bicycles. The new cruisers
through the bush by timber cruisers. The job was hard
estimated not only poplars but birch and all sorts of
physically, but it had two alleviating features. Once I had
smaller stuff that earlier cruisers wouldn't have sniffed at.
loaded up at the base camp I could go at my own pace.
Pic River terrain was totally different from the
This meant that I could stop and do an oil sketch
country around Playter Harbour or Peninsula. Whenever
138
• Daylight in the Swamp • I visited these places on the Superior shore, the steep
Years later I would come to realize that Jack had
shores, huge hills and vast stretches of open water
probably been told about the Maymaygwaysi, the
glimpsed between headlands never failed to impress me.
mysterious rock people. They had hairy faces, stole from
Lake Superior, after all, is this planet's largest freshwater
people's nets, and paddled stone canoes. The Crees
sea. At night, it was no less impressive. In midsummer an
conceived these same supernatural beings as very small
evening fog would roll in from the lake to lick at the hills.
and having no noses. Not your average Viking, to be sure.
When I began an oil sketch one evening, the shoreline
But to return to the Pic River and the Lake Superior
was clear, already like Lawren Harris' North Shore.
coast: the Pic is unlike any other Shield river I've seen,
Working from a burned-over hill, I was dismayed to see
with the possible exception of the Winisk and the
my landscape gradually vanish, until the whole subject
Atawapiskat. It's like a prairie river—muddy. So muddy
disappeared. Later I descended from the hill into the cold,
that the major hazards are deadheads, waterlogged
damp fog itself. Ugh!
timbers that lie submerged in wait, like so many
If you examine the Lake Superior shoreline more
alligators, submerged under the opaque surface. The
closely, from a canoe, for instance, you will find
banks of the Pic, on the other hand, resemble those of the
occasional deep fissures in the rock where a softer vein
lower Severn and Nelson Rivers. Steep walls of gravel or
has been eroded away by millennia of storms. You can
sand/clay erode and slide into the river.
hide a canoe in some of the larger fissures. Jack Ennis was
Packing on the Pic was, well, no picnic. At first my job
enthralled by the idea that the Vikings had penetrated the
appeared to be a cinch. Our first object was to establish a
North American continent as far as Lake Superior. He
base camp two miles inland east of the river. I packed
had heard from local Ojibway that "there used to be hairy
supplies from the river base four miles upstream to the
men that would paddle their big boats right up to those
landing of the trail to the bush camp. Well established,
cracks and disappear into them." To Jack's wishful way of
the trail led through two miles of high and dry spruce
thinking, these beings could be none other than Vikings.
and poplar terrain.
His speculations were no doubt set in motion by the
Our party consisted of two "timber cruisers" from
"discovery" of Viking relics near Beardmore, Ontario.
Maine called Lee and Eric; two high school kids from Fort
Also, in the course of his wanderings, he had come upon
William (now Thunder Bay) who worked as tally-men; a
the remains of a stone structure on the shore of a lake on
young clerk from Maine; a cook; and an old man who
the Spanish River. In any case, who better to remember
could just barely walk himself into the camp without a
the Vikings than the Ojibway?
load. At first, I was the only packer, but a few weeks after I
139
• Daylight in the Swamp • started, a stocky Swede named Ole and a Scotch lad from
second growth of young poplars and other trees has
Cape Breton came in to carry loads.
grown up through the timbers and produced an opaque,
Before the new packers arrived, I was the only one
leafy screen in the process. You can't tell what your foot
carrying into the bush camp. Although I slept in the
will encounter. Although you may trip frequently in cedar
relative luxury of the river base camp, every morning
swamp, you will trip continually in overgrown fire slash.
brought the same grim reality. I would take the first load
Obstructionist terrain takes only a mild interest in
by kicker down the river to the landing, wrestle the load
someone on a survey traverse. After all, such people carry
onto my back, then tote it two miles into the bush camp,
only a lunch bag, a compass, and a pace counter. But
or even beyond that to a new advance camp another two
packers have the worst of it. The branches clutch at your
miles deeper into the bush. On one typical day, I brought
pack, of course, and when you fall the heavy pack drives
in a thirty pound leg of ham, twenty-five pounds of fresh
you into the muck which makes the whole thing so much
meat, and thirty pounds of assorted groceries. The meat,
more worthwhile for the trees, both living and dead.
as I recall, was hardly "fresh", having turned a rather
On the day in question, I arrived at the advance camp
pleasant green colour, and somewhat odoriferous.
exhausted, having just traversed some of the worst
Ninety-odd pounds is no great weight for a one-mile
examples of both types of terrain. When I began to eat
portage but beyond that it becomes an incredible burden.
my lunch, it started to rain. By the time I got back to the
I had to rest every three or four hundred yards.
river, I was completely soaked except for the small area of
Beyond the bush camp the ground was not so good.
my back covered by the empty pack. Going back up the
The nadir of overland bush travel occurs in the two
river in an empty kicker-powered canoe was not as easy
terrains I call "obstructionist": cedar swamp and second-
as it sounds, even when the motor kept going. With only
growth fire slash. In the first terrain, low thickets of
my empty pack and gasoline tins as ballast, the vessel
swamp cedar conceal treacherous pockets of sphagnum
tended to ride very low in the stern making it hard to
moss. The branches of these cedars proliferate
control in the slow and tricky grind against the current.
horizontally instead of vertically and they frequently die
Sometimes I would take a heavy log with me to balance
back in the process. This leaves sharp spikes that clutch
the load. Or if I had the time I would cut a spruce pole,
viciously at any passerby. They specialize in ripping shirts,
lash it to the throttle of the kicker, then move my weight
pants, socks or skin with equal impartiality. In the
amidships to steer and control the motor from there.
second terrain, a recent forest fire has left the ground
When the base camp came into view I would sometimes
criss-crossed by every type of fallen, still-black timber. A
burst spontaneously into song. A hearty meal, followed 140
• Daylight in the Swamp • by an evening of drying clothes and washing socks,
This happens to be true of his famous painting The West
completed a full day.
Wind, for example.
Ole, the Swede moved into one of the tents with me at
Artistic pursuits not only provided me with diversion
the river camp with the result that I got to know him
in the bush, they actually earned me a living, if only for a
pretty well. No one I have ever worked with illustrated so
day. One Saturday night, Mike Chernovsky drove me out
well the psychological rigour of bush labour, or the pathos
to Heron Bay where I had a couple of beers with him.
of a homesick immigrant with a limited command of
After a few more, I took out my sketch book and the fun
English. I feared that Ole would follow the classic pattern,
began. After a few casual sketches of groups, I was
turning into a bush-bum over the years. He would earn
beseiged by pleas to be drawn. My fee was fifty cents.
some cash over the warm months, then move to the city
Some paid in beer and some in cash. The pocket change
for the winter, spending his hard-earned money on booze
alternately piled up and dwindled as some put money
and prostitutes. Becoming less and less employable over
down and others helped themselves. One of the fellows I
the years, he would turn by degrees into an alcoholic, in
had sketched earlier came back from the room marked
and out of jails and hospitals, alienated from life in the
"Women and Escorts Only" with a request to draw his girl
new land and forever cut off the old. I can't say this is
friend. It was now 11:45 and I was worn out after
what happened to Ole, of course. As the season
sketching frantically for a solid two hours. I am sorry
progressed, we made trips more frequently together. He
now that the thing went commercial, that I had to let
never spoke very much, but I took his silences to mean
some of those sketches go. One of the patrons, for
that he felt comfortable with me.
instance, made a perfect Judas. However, I made more
Sketching bush subjects provided me with occasional
than the dollar and a half my hotel room would cost.
hours of pleasant absorption. My oil sketching followed
Many times during the summer, but especially toward
the Group of Seven method then in vogue at the Ontario
the end, I thought of pulling up stakes and leaving. At
College of Art. The idea was to make one or more small
such times, the only thing that kept me on the Pic was
oil paintings directly from a subject, then to bring the
our need for money. Irene and three little mouths awaited
sketches back to the studio and repaint the more
the fruits of my labour. Near the end of August, I
promising ones on canvas on a much larger scale. Anyone
discovered a reason for having waited so long, a
who has seen original sketches by an artist like Tom
justification for everything. Between one of the base
Thomson will realize that sometimes these have more
camps and an advance camp, I discovered Nama Creek.
immediacy and feeling than the fully worked out canvas.
At the time, I was filling in as an assistant cook for an
141
Figure 49.
"Eric" (after a heavy meal) 1943
• Daylight in the Swamp • advance party off in the bush. A cruiser named Lee had
he had shot his own brother in a hunting accident, how
come upon the creek during a particularly exhausting
he had raced to get his brother out of the woods in time
traverse. When I heard about the place from Lee, I went to
to see a doctor. Somehow the Maine dialect made it all
visit it at my first opportunity. The trail was hot and tiring
seem the more compelling.
as it wound through swampy ground. But what a relief to
In mid-August, I volunteered to fill in as cook for the
get out on the bare, smooth rock to find a cascade of water
advance party while Joe, the regular cook, worked at the
so refreshing, so beautiful, I knew immediately that I
base camp. Rising before the sun at 4:30,1 would get the
would paint it. I made some sketches and two years later
breakfast ready for 6:30. After that I had some free time
completed a large canvas called Nama Creek.
until 4:30 in the afternoon, when I had to start supper.
Labour-management relations soured somewhat after
My specialties were meat, potatoes, soup, hot cakes and
the new packers arrived, a situation I tried to lighten by
the like. Occasionally, the boys would bring in a partridge
forming a "Union". We called ourselves the P. U. A. (Packers
or a speckled trout or grayling they had caught. More
Union of America). At a meeting one night, we decided
specialized stuff came from Joe at the base camp: pies,
that one trip a day and sixty pounds per trip was our limit.
bread, cake and cookies. Every other day, I would travel
Directing the operation of establishing and supplying the
back to the base camp to pack in a load of these
bush camp fell to a man named Gardner, the head cruiser.
delicacies, along with other groceries. Before each meal, I
He walked into the P. U. A. the next morning and informed
would write out a menu on birchbark and tack it to a tree
us that two trips a day would be about right.
near the crude table we had thrown together. Utter
Gardner was an enigmatic New Englander. When I
barbarians, my clients ignored the menu, even when I
first met him, sampled his clipped Maine accent and his
pointed it out to them. However, at meals they behaved
conventional ways, I privately regarded him as a man
themselves because they followed the time-honoured
stuffed with inhibitions. But, as I got to know him better,
bush tradition of silence, except for the occasional, "Pass
I discovered his sense of humour. Every now and then it
the butter", or "Where's the ketchup?"
would break through the clouds of his personality like a glimpse of blue sky
These were good days. During my hours off, I could explore and sketch to my heart's content. Soon enough, it
We saw very little of the cruisers but one unforgettable
seemed, the summer had evaporated. I found myself
evening we packers listened in fascinated horror to a story
returning to Playter Harbour. Here I ran into Jack Ennis
Eric had to tell. With as much feeling as if it had
again. I finally discovered why he'd been in the hospital.
happened yesterday, the hard-bitten cruiser told us how 143
Jack wintered, as you may recall, in Playter Harbour.
• Daylight in the Swamp • He lived alone in a framed tent with a wood-burning
shoot was that the animal appeared already to be
stove. One day, early that spring, he became aware of a
wounded or in some kind of trouble.
throbbing pain in his lower abdomen. At first he thought
When they realized it was Jack, they gave him what
it was just a stitch. But as the pain got worse, he
small care they could and packed him off to Port Arthur
recognized the symptoms of appendicitis. At first, he
(now Thunder Bay). The doctors there operated just in
decided simply to ride it out. But one morning he awoke
time. In fact, Jack required a second operation for an
with a high fever and such agonizing pain that he knew
infected hip from which they removed a piece of bone the
he must get to a doctor or die. He staggered out of the
size of a shears handle. By the time I arrived at his camp,
tent, took a few steps, and immediately passed out. When
Jack looked just normal enough for me to suspect
he came to, he crawled back into the tent. The next day,
nothing serious. By the end of the summer he was healthy
he made two attempts to get away. He fell both times and
enough to pack a load in circles around me.
returned to the tent.
Jack is long dead, member of a dying breed. But not
Time was getting short, it was now or never. On the
far from the island where I write this, there's another Jack
third attempt, he staggered a few paces, then fell to his
who celebrated his eightieth birthday last Christmas and
hands and knees and began to crawl. He crawled along a
still does the work of three men. Jack McKee, who built a
winter road, now half thawed and almost impassable, all
new cabin for us on the north side of the island, is well
the way to Mike Chernovsky's camp at the mouth of the
into his 70s. This Jack, who has worked as a trapper,
Pic. Every fifteen minutes or so, Jack would pause to rest.
prospector, fire-boss, and lumber-jack, is still hale and
Sometimes, he would pull up his jacket and lie with his
hearty, and an endless source of stories for my children
naked belly next to the snow. This seemed to numb the
and grandchildren to hear.
pain a bit. Recalling it all, Jack figured it took him some twelve hours to crawl to the river's edge by the Chernovsky camp. His nails were broken and his fingers bled. His pants were gone from the knees down as he began crawling across the ice toward the camp. Perhaps because the sun was setting, Jack resembled some kind of slow moving animal out there on the ice. Chernovsky's accountant saw the animal and alerted Mike, who got out his rifle. The only reason Mike didn't
144
chapter twelve
Boys in the Bush
In the evening we went for a paddle (Donner and Kee
this trip. Looking back, the finances seem impossible. We
each trailing a spinner) ... Passing too dose to some weeds,
had bought the original house for a mere $3,500 and that
I told Donner to watch for a phony "bite" He got one. I
year our living expenses came to a little over $100 a
took the line, thinking to pull in some weeds and found we
month. Royalties from the book brought in $1200.
had a fish. . . . As I lifted the fish in, a medium-sized
We took the train to Nicholson and got Olga out of
jackfish, he came off the hook and flopped frantically . . .
storage, where Mike Chernovsky had been kind enough to
Donner's and Kee's eyes popped with excitement but they
ship her. The logging town of Nicholson was still alive in
kept their places 'til I stunned the fish with my paddle.
1946, but already moribund. Three of the village houses were empty and all of the buildings were run down,
Diary: Lake Windermere, August 1946
including the schoolhouse and the church. I made a sketch Four years had passed before I got up north again, this
of the church and took Donner around to look at the
time with my young family. The war was over and I had
empty houses. Their contents had been stripped and now
resigned my teaching job. Irene and I decided to take our
they stored lumber and unused equipment. Nicholson still
two oldest sons, Donner and Keewatin, leaving baby Peter
boasted a general store, a bakery, a smithy, a harness shop
with my brother Albert and his wife Margaret in Toronto.
and, of course, a railway station. The two daily passenger
The year 1946 was eventful in other ways. I cashed in
trains going east and west rarely stopped. As for the
my pension fund accumulation of $800 and with it I
harness shop and smithy, the lumber industry still used
somehow managed to build an addition to our house,
horses exclusively to haul logs. In other parts of the
write and publish a novel (Wind Without Rain ), and take
country, tractors were coming into use for winter hauling.
145
Daylight in the Swamp tent to attach the small wedge tent where the boys would sleep. Donner (Irene's family name, also German for "thunder") was six and a half years old. Keewatin (the Algonkian word for north wind) was about to turn five. In fact, we celebrated his birthday then and there. At six on his birthday morning, Kee lay shrouded completely under his blankets. I played "Happy Birthday" on the recorder. No response. Irene, Donner, and I sang "Happy Birthday". Still no response. Finally, Irene got out the presents and we began to pretend we were unwrapping them with loud comments of surprise. Suddenly a little blue-eyed face popped out of the covers, grinning as only Kee can. He unwrapped his presents: A miniature English sports car, a truck, and a passenger car. "Oh", said Kee. "A nineteen-six-forty model!" A wire seive and sand play-set completed his modest windfall. An original child even then, Kee converted unfamiliar words into familiar ones. A "loon" was a "balloon" and a "raft" was a "giraffe". On one occasion out on the lake, I Figure 50. Church at Nicholson, 1946
We renewed our acquaintance with Bill and Hazel Austin, a friendly and hospitable couple whom we had
saw a wind coming up so I instructed Kee to call upon Keewatin to blow. When it did, he was amazed at his omnipotence!
met a few years earlier. Bill owned and operated the
Anxious that our boys learn to love the land as we did,
Austin Lumber Company. Layton Goodwin, the good-
we exposed them to bush life in every way we could think
natured station agent at Nicholson, ran us out to a small
of. I taught Donner to chop wood for the fire. I took both
beach west of the village. It was an ideal campsite where I
boys on a tramp into the bush, then asked them to show
could paint Olga grey and show the boys some camping
me the way back. But their main instruction lay in the use
basics. We split the back seam of the eight-by-ten wall
of the canoe. 146
Daylight in the Swamp Figure 51, Old Barn - Nicholson, 1 946
Strange to think of it now, we had no thought of using
according to plan. Unfortunately, she put her other foot
life jackets and used none ourselves. We thought it far
into the canoe too soon. Her full weight ground the
more important to teach the boys to avoid capsizing in
canoe to an instant halt, and her momentum carried her
the first place. If the water was rough, they were to sit on
head first into the bow. She looked peculiar, almost
the bottom of the canoe, keeping their centre of gravity
standing on her head, legs in the air. I broke into a guffaw
low. They were to kneel while paddling (although I
but our two little sons stared in awe at the spectacle,
seldom set a good example in this regard). The key word
wondering whether they would ever be able to master
was not safety, but respect. They had to respect the wind
the manoeuvre.
and the waves, respect the capacity and limitations of canoe travel, respect wildlife.
To be fair, I should add a fiasco of my own. Many years later, I tried to teach my grandson Jonathan how to
But we could overdo the teaching urge. Once, pushing
put on the brakes when his canoe was confronted, let us
a beached canoe into the water, Irene told the boys, "Now
say, by a submerged boulder. I spurted in towards
I'll show you the proper way to shove off when you're the
Jonathan who sat skeptically on the shore. At the last
bow paddler." She began to shove, one foot in the canoe,
possible moment, I put all my strength into a deep back-
the other on the sand. She gave a mighty heave. The
paddle. I must have waited a second too long or leaned
canoe yielded obediently and began to slide off the beach
too far. As the paddle sent a huge wall of water
147
• Daylight in the Swamp • shoreward, the canoe gracefully capsized. I stood up in
Then it made an unbelievably quick swipe at my face,
about three feet of water and tried to save face. "That's
just catching my left cheek through the open window
how not to stop a canoe!" Jonathan, soaked by the splash,
and leaving a faint scar that you can see to this day.
was not impressed.
Travelling along an old portage trail through the bush
Wildlife was always worth watching for. As we set out
with the boys one day, I remarked that we might see a
on our bush excursion, I quizzed the boys. Where would
bear. "Does this trail go to a zoo?" Kee wanted to know. At
the loon come up next? What was that long, slender
one camp all four of us got involved in building an
furry creature watching from the shore? The one animal
aquarium on the beach. We filled it with pollywogs just
that Irene and I were always on the lookout for never
getting their legs, with live clams, a minnow we caught, a
showed up: bears. We had become obsessed with bears
large black water beetle, and two leeches. We also found
ever since the Red Lake trip when we hadn't seen a one,
and added a number of caddis fly larvae living in long
even in the distance.
shells made out of assorted debris like pine needle and
Strangely enough, in all the nights that I have camped alone in the bush, I have seen neither hide nor
grains of sand. They crawled along the bottom of the aquarium like tiny animated sticks.
hair of a bear. I told myself it was because I kept a
More thrills awaited the boys when we paddled toward
meticulously clean camp. I burned all food scraps and
the nesting site of a gull on an isolated rock one day. The
kept supplies well stowed. Jack Ennis, who kept a less
mother dive-bombed us. The term is apt because this
than immaculate camp, on the other hand, had a fund
graceful flyer first gains altitude than dives straight down
of bear stories. Including the bear that invaded his tent
at you, pulling up only a few feet from your head. She'll
one night while Jack was away and got its nose stuck in a
repeat the performance, again and again, as long as you
jam jar. When Jack returned, he found the bear
stay around. We stopped at another gull rock to inspect
wandering his camp with the jam jar over its muzzle.
an abandoned nest only to encounter a loon with two
The only close encounter I ever had with a bear came
young ones on her back. The mother dumped the
later in life during one of my many trips in search of
loonlings and put on a comical display to lure us away.
pictographs. In one of the provincial parks, I came upon
She stood up on her tail and flopped about on the water
a young bear standing beside the road. He looked
as if her wing were broken.
friendly enough so I stopped the VW microbus and
One evening when the boys had been put to bed in
began to speak with him as I do with most animals I
their special tent, Irene sang "Swing Low Sweet Chariot".
encounter. The bear stood it for about five seconds.
The phrase "comin' for to carry me home" stimulated a
148
• Daylight in the Swamp • discussion of old age and death. This led to speculations
Although camping by a beach is not always a pleasant
about the universe as a whole. "If all the atoms went out
affair, owing to no-seeums, blowing sand and the like, it
of a toy," Kee wanted to know, "would it fall to pieces?"
can provide endless absorption for children. At
One week on Lake Windermere was all the vacation
Timberwolf Lake it invited miniature projects like roads
we had that year. Little did we realize that we would be
and sand castles. It reminded me of the ones I used to
back thirty years later to occupy an island that we must
engage in as a ten-year-old at Sand Lake in Saskatchewan:
have passed more than once as we explored the lake in
I can recall building a neat little country home
August, 1946. But for the time being, our dream of a
surrounded by a moss forest with an access road running
summer home in the bush was fading.
through it. I used three kinds of moss to suggest stands
Algonquin Park had never been much more than a
of spruce and deciduous trees, even making little wood-
name to me before 1946.1 knew it only as the place where
chip cars. It worried me not in the least that the cars had
Tom Thomson had done much of his painting and,
no wheels.
finally, drowned. But when I edited and wrote an
As at Windermere, wildlife fascinated the boys. One
introduction to Audrey Saunders' Algonquin Story that
evening at sunset they were all squatting on a shelf of
year, I developed a vicarious familiarity with the place
rock brushing their teeth, when one of them spotted two
and a desire to see that fabled country for myself.
crayfish in shallow water, their nippers locked. It was
In the summer of 1947 Irene and I took all three boys,
getting dark so we got out the flashlight and all five of us
Donner, Kee, and Peter, up to the park for a two-week
watched in sheer fascination as the combatants wrestled
exploratory sojourn. We still had no car so we travelled by
back and forth. At full darkness, they cast long, alien
train, having selected on the map an obscure-looking
shadows against the rocky bottom. Perhaps this helped
station called Brule Lake as our jumping-off point. We
set the stage for a reading of The First Men in the Moon,
had already arranged for Olga to be shipped down from
by H.G. Wells. I began that night and continued every
Nicholson and she was waiting for us when we arrived. In
night until the book was finished.
fact, there was time to portage out of Brule Lake into
During the day the boys were in and out of the water.
Timberwolf Lake before night fell. We pitched our tent
Inevitably one of them (Kee in this case) discovered a
near an abandoned ranger's cabin just yards from a
leech on his ankle. Unthinkingly, I wrenched it off,
pleasant little beach. The boys were a little bigger now,
leaving the head inside the skin. This created an infection
Donner was seven, Kee five, and Peter four. The wedge
that had to be treated when we got home. While folding
tent annex now slept all three.
some blankets one day, Irene got a nasty sting from a
149
• Daylight in the Swamp • hornet that got mixed up with the fabric. That was the
tow. How would we like to sleep in the night watchman's
only insect problem that came up in the whole trip. The
cabin? He'd get us up in plenty of time!
Algonquin country seemed remarkably free of blackflies or mosquitoes at the time.
I was enthusiastic, Irene was reluctant, but we accepted. The old man led us up the hill to a small shack
The day we went out it rained steadily. Portaging back
which had one bed that could be pulled out to make
into Brule Lake, we stopped halfway for respite from a
another half-bed. The kids would sleep on the floor. They
heavy shower. We turned the canoe over and propped it
didn't seem to mind the reek of fly repellent. Nor did they
to make a cosy lean-to under which we could all sit and
seem to notice the piles of dead flies on the sills of
watch the rain fall past the opposite gunwale. Peter had
windows that were never opened. Irene was appalled and
packed his load so manfully that I recognized it by giving
couldn't sleep. I slept fitfully, waking frequently just in
him a smoke. Today's urbanites, horrified by anti-
time to save myself from falling out of bed. We had found
smoking campaigns, have no idea of the relief and
a pathetic pile of nudist magazines with titles like
relaxation that can come from a few drags on a cigarette
Sunbathing for Health.
after an exhausting bit of bush travel. We arrived at the Brule Lake station late in the afternoon only to learn that the train would not come
By the next evening, five weary travellers descended from the train in London, Ontario, returning to the challenge of life without a steady income.
through until early morning. The rain had stopped so we
Curiously, just as the rest of the country enjoyed the
"did the town". There was an old-fashioned steam-
spreading affluence of postwar years, the family income
powered sawmill still in operation, two or three
hovered close to the poverty line. I had resigned my
warehouses, and a barnlike building that housed the local
teaching job in protest over the treatment of a colleague
Lands and Forests Office. Here we met the ranger who
by the London Board of Education and I had found a
showed us some magnificent wolf pelts hanging from the
part-time job teaching art to mental patients, most of
rafters inside. He agreed to store Olga for the winter so
them World War I veterans, at London's Westminster
we heaved her up gently onto some beams and left with a
Hospital. Over the postwar decade, I turned my hand to
feeling of relief. Little did we realize that we would never
book illustration and mural painting to supplement our
see her again.
income. Illustrating textbooks turned out to provide an
As the sun set, we were just anticipating the
irregular income at best, and the commissions I earned
discomfort of a night on the hard benches of the station
from mural painting involved long waits between
when Kee turned up with the sawmill night watchman in
submission of sketches and the final payment. To these
150
Daylight in the Swamp uncertain sources of income I added private teaching. We
Instead, I painted a pictograph on her bow of the most
barely managed.
powerful Algonkian manitou, Mishipizhiw. By this
In the meantime, our family was growing. In 1951
symbol I honoured the native tradition of invoking the
our fourth son Christopher was born, completing the
mighty underwater serpent-lion for a safe passage over its
roster. By 1954, Donner had grown into a husky fourteen-
sovereign domain.
year-old. By day he attended high school. In the evenings
I had always regretted that Irene and I had not
and on weekends he worked part time at the local fish-
included Lac Seul on our honeymoon canoe trip. When
and-chip store peeling potatoes for an alcoholic
Donner bought the canoe, we shipped it to Hudson.
proprietor whom he had to escort home more than once,
Starting from there, we planned to travel up Lac Seul,
propping him up.
portage over to Wahbiskang, go down the Cedar River to
The north had never seemed so far away. Not only
the English, along that river to the mouth of the
were our finances precarious, but the beloved Olga had
Wabigoon. We would then paddle up the Wabigoon to
died in a raging fire when the Lands and Forests building
Canyon Lake and the railroad stop at Macintosh where
at Brule Lake had burned down. There had been no
we would board the train for home. For me it would be a
insurance. Irene, who sensed the importance of the bush,
sentimental journey, for Donner a basic bush
proposed that I take Donner on a two-week canoe trip.
apprenticeship.
But in what canoe?
At Hudson,
Frank
Bowman
still
ran
his
Donner had been setting aside a few dollars a week
transportation and fishing businesses but the waterfront
from his job at the fish-and-chip store and by 1954 he
had changed radically. We stocked up with food and
had earned enough money to buy a canoe jointly with us.
pushed off. I felt uneasy about the changes in Hudson
We, of course, would have to pay him back within a few
and the lowering clouds did nothing to bring back the
years since these were his savings for medical school. In
sunlit vistas I remembered. Naturally, I nevertheless
those days, every major department store stocked canoes
looked forward to seeing Lac Seul the way I remembered
in a variety of models. We went to Toronto and found a
it and my unease gradually receded, as did Hudson, in
fifteen-foot prospector at Eaton's. She was broader of
the distance behind us.
beam than Olga, and flatter of bottom, a keelless, canvas-
Within an hour or two, I came to realize that my new
covered Chestnut canoe. She was no mere pleasure craft
maps of the Lac Seul area were not very useful. Although
but a working canoe, superior to Olga in carrying a
they showed the new road and other "improvements" in
greater load with a shallower draft! She never got a name.
the landscape, the mapmakers hadn't caught up with
151
Daylight in the Swamp changes in water levels in the area mapped. Moreover, my
father's incompetence. He was already something of a
memory of the old canoe route ot Lac Seul utterly
worrier, and there undoubtedly flashed through his mind
confused me as I looked closely at the new geography.
a series of misadventures, if not catastrophes.
Headlands had become islands, little bays had become
The next morning, we paddled through a depressing
deep inlets. The wild rice fields that I used to pass on my
forest of dead, flooded trees that still stood, a graveyard of
way back to the mission from Hudson had all vanished.
wooden ghosts, then finally emerged onto the open lake.
Brush had overgrown the old camp grounds at
Inevitably, drawn by the powerful memories of my
Frenchman's Head. It dismayed me even more to realize
halcyon years, I headed the canoe for the mission church.
that I had lost the knack of relating actual distances to
The visit was to have far-reaching results. The desolation
map scales.
of that dilapidated building, the sense of a lost age,
Things might have gone all right in spite of these
nostalgia for those two wonderful summers on Lac Seul,
factors if the sun had been out, but it rained and I had no
blended together into a feeling so powerful that I was
clue about directions unless I took out my compass, a thing
later to draw on it for my second novel, still ahead of me.
I was loath to do in front of Donner. Hadn't I told him that
In Christopher Breton, I described the interior of that
I knew this country "like the back of my hand?" The
storied church almost exactly as I found it on my return
inevitable happened. After paddling for little more than an
with Donner. I sat quietly reflecting in the back of the
hour, we rounded a point and found ourselves heading
church while Donner explored around outside.
straight for Hudson again. Donner was more dismayed
Nothing of the old mission house was left, nothing of
than I. How could it happen? His dad, the seasoned bush
the old Hudson's Bay post. Water covered Aldous's golf
traveller, lost on the very first day of the trip?
course and the former beach. It had forced the HBC to
I was determined to find the one portage that must
build a second post further back, among the trees. There
still be above flood level. We poked our nose into one bay
was no one about, so we paddled over to the bay where
after another. But everywhere deadfall covered the shores,
we found a group of people standing on a dock and
some of it the debris of uprooted trees that had floated
waiting for a boat from Hudson. Deciding that it made
about the lake for a decade or more. Finally, I was sure
more sense to take the boat thirty miles up the lake rather
that we had found the portage. It had fallen into neglect
than paddle against a stiff headwind the whole distance,
and was so totally overgrown as to be invisible. We
we joined the crowd. We stood chatting with the
camped for the night. Staring into the embers of our fire
Hudson's Bay clerk when he accidently dropped his
that night, Donner looked deeply anxious about his
glasses into the water beside the dock. Donner was an 752
• Daylight in the Swamp • excellent swimmer so I suggested that he dive for them,
perfect days. At one point I made a sketch of the cliff on a
The water was eight feet deep and Donner had difficulty
nearby island. I also remembered with perfect clarity a
locating the glasses against the bottom. He had to feel his
shore opposite the campsite, not fifty yards away. I was
way. Again and again he dove. He found the glasses just
about to receive a big shock,
before the boat pulled in.
When we arrived at the campsite, the rock, the
The vessel turned out to be a fish boat. We bummed a
jackpine and the shelving shore were exactly as I had
ride and rode with it all the way to its final destination,
remembered them. But where was the opposite shore? It
the owner's fish camp. A free meal and a sauna
had vanished utterly! There was open water for at least
immersion topped off the day.
half a mile all around us. The cliff I had painted was
On the morrow we were back in the canoe, paddling
barely visible, well down the lake! The solution did not
until we reached a tourist outfit at the west end of the
come until, writing these memoirs, I noticed that Irene
lake. Here we got another lucky break. A truck was about
and I had spent our two nights on Wahbiskang at two
to leave for the main highway. The driver cheerfully gave
different campsites. One of them Donner and I now
us a lift over what would have been a very tough portage
inhabited, the other we had already passed without
and dropped us off at the north end of the portage into
realizing it. I had merged the memory of two different
Wahbiskang Lake.
campsites into one!
Travelling north along part of the route Irene and I
Two days later, a second shock awaited. As we paddled
had taken on our return from Red Lake, we were
down the Cedar River, I told Donner that we were
approaching a campsite of which I had the clearest
approaching a true wilderness area where we wouldn't
possible mental image over the intervening years,
see another soul for at least three days. Just then we
"Tonight," I told Donner, "we'll camp at the same site
heard a work whistle and, as we rounded a bend in the
where your mother and I spent two wonderful days and
river, came upon a construction crew working full blast
nights." I went on, describing the site in glowing terms
on a hydro dam. As it would turn out many years later,
and leaving him in no doubt about just how it looked:
this was just the first of many hydro dams on the English
There was a thin stand of jack pine growing on flat
River system, all to provide electricity for Winnipeg and
bedrock that shelved gently into the lake. There could be
northwestern Ontario.
no mistaking the site, I told him, because a huge block of
After the dam, our wilderness finally materialized and
granite lay near the fireplace, exactly the right height and
the days grew leisurely. By the time we reached the
flatness to make a table. Here Irene and I had spent two
Wabigoon, I realized that we were falling behind
153
• Daylight in the Swamp • schedule. We paddled into the twilight until potential
Corn and pommes de terre dessechees
campsites were no longer visible. We weren't very far
Rice pudding with raisins and coconut topping
from the next portage but an ominous roll of thunder
Tea and coffee
sent us paddling for the shore. In a state of semi-panic we pitched our tent in what was probably the worst place I've
Of course no meal could compare with the game
ever camped in, a sort of hollow filled with two or three
which we frequently saw during the trip, mainly moose,
rotting logs that we didn't take the time to remove. Up
bald eagles and deer. The most touching sight presented
went the tent, down came the rain, and we made it inside
itself on a narrow part of the English River, where a small
just in time. But how to find rest for our weary bodies on
strip of beach fronted a steep forested hill. A doe suckled
the rotting deadfall? Working by flashes of lightning, we
her fawn for a moment, neither aware of our presence.
tried to level the groundsheet a bit. We were just getting it
The fawn suddenly pulled away and went gambolling
nicely organized when a sudden burst of wind collapsed
down the beach. It would put on a burst of speed, twist
the tent. Exhausted, we simply lay under the collapsed
around, kick up its heels, then run into the bush. Just
canvas. Of course, the hollow beneath us gradually filled
when the mother grew anxious, it would burst out into
with water and soon the entire floor of the tent was
the open again for a repeat performance.
soaking. I remember nothing else of that night. Perhaps
At the whistle-stop called Macintosh, we ended our
we slept the sleep of the dead regardless of soaked
trip. Donner had grown rather homesick during the last
bedrolls and sore backs.
few days of the trip and I too was ready for home.
After such depressing experiences some highlights were in order. We paddled up the Wabigoon and into Canyon River where we made camp just two portages below the site where Irene and I had camped on our honeymoon trip. Here, after washing our clothes and dishes, we prepared a morale-boosting meal. I still have the menu: Smoked oysters on wheaten biscuits Mushroom soup a la Lipton Chicken a la King 154
Figure 52, S e l w y n Dewdney, March 1946
This page intentionally left blank
chapter thirteen Red
In the old days, before the Shaganash came, the Anishinahbaig knew many things. They made canoes of birchbark. Instead of guns they had bows and arrows and spears. They split hard stones to make points for these. They made pemmican to eat when food was scarce. They knew of many roots that would heal the sick. The old men sang magic songs. Soon the old ways will be gone, like tobacco that is smoked to ashes... Excerpt from Canon Sanderson's introduction to the Ojibway Elders, 1960 It was on Lake of the Woods that I first saw the mysterious aboriginal paintings called pictographs. On a trip to Blindfold Lake with a chum by the name of Charlie Smith, I encountered the rocky cliffs and red ochre figures for the first time. The name "Blindfold" is apt enough. Overlapping rocky points hid what was to come. Only a wealth of bubbles in the water hinted at rapids nearby. A short liftover brought us face to face 157
Ochre
Figure 53. Christmas card made by Selwyn Dewdney, 1957
• Daylight in the Swamp • with a vertical rock face, about six feet high, with a
Quetico Park the previous summer. Indian rock paintings
sloping ledge below.
had been reported at several places in the park. When and
We paid scant attention to the figures in red ochre. Instead, we were fascinated by the offerings on the ledge:
if he could find the funds, would I be interested in going there to record the paintings? I would.
a rusting chipped enamelware cup and plate, some
Two years later I finally heard from him again. He had
clothing. What else? I can't remember. We felt something
the funds. Could I go? The task that was to occupy a
magical here, something too deep for words. We touched
larger and larger part of my life for the next twenty-five
an alien culture.
years had begun.
The year 1957 was a watershed for me and, to some
The money came from the Quetico Foundation, an
extent, for the whole family. That year I began what was
organization of influential figures in the forestry and
to be the primary occupation of the rest of my life. You
mining industries, along with a sprinkling of corporate
could say that I finally discovered what I wanted to do
lawyers. All were dedicated to preserving wilderness
when I grew up.
values in areas where their own industries were not
I had left my high school teaching job and was eking
jeopardized by unreasonable environmental restrictions.
out a marginal living as a textbook illustrator,
To do the Foundation justice, it took a keen interest
supplemented by teaching landscape painting to amateur
in the Quetico area, situated on the international
art clubs and exploring art therapy at Westminster
boundary roughly halfway between Thunder Bay and
Veterans' Hospital. Earlier, in 1951,1 had even thought of
Fort Frances. Later they extended their charter to cover
becoming a mural artist. Through much of the decade I
all Ontario provincial parks and wielded considerable
had enough commissions to sustain the dream, including
influence on government policies concerning them. The
the board room of the Bank of Nova Scotia at Bay and
Foundation put up $900 towards my expenses, the
King in Toronto, Waterloo Trust in Kitchener, and several
Department of Lands and Forests provided living
in London: the London Life Company, the Odeon
quarters at French Lake in Quetico Park, and the Royal
Theatre, Victoria Hospital, and General Motors.
Ontario Museum lent respectability to the project by
During a visit to the Royal Ontario Museum in
allowing its name to be used.
Toronto, I met Kenneth Kidd, curator of the Ethnology
For me this was an unbelievable godsend—an all-
Department, and by sheer good luck he happened to
summer sojourn in God's country with my family. By
know of my interest in pictographs. Kidd explained that
canoe and by air I made half a dozen forays into the Park
he had just completed an archaeological survey of
interior, with Kee and Peter alternating as field assistants. 158
Daylight in the Swamp Figure 54. Selwyn Dewdney and son Christopher with VW minibus during a pictographic expedition
In the course of the summer I found a dozen sites. Our
contributed to the herbariums of several important
happiness was tempered, however, by the rough time Irene
museums and was an experienced bird-watcher to boot.
was having. Her mother had died only a few months
This was Chris's first exposure to the bush. I must add
before, and then she had to travel to Kitchener for a last
that, after Lake of the Woods and Lac Seul as they were,
glimpse of her father. We were so short of money that she
Quetico Park ranks third in my experience of canoe
had to hitch-hike from Thunder Bay to the Park, carrying
country. You have to go east, all the way to Lake
her suitcase and a basket of Bartlett pears!
Temagami, to approach it.
The expeditions made good camping and canoeing
My canoe was the one I had purchased from Donner
experience for Peter and Kee. After the turmoil of her
when he was a medical student. Thereafter, she was
Kitchener visit, Irene could unwind, as well. She had only
faithful servant to the pictograph project wherever I went
Christopher to look after now and Claude Garten, the
pictograph hunting in the Shield country. I even took her
park botanist, fed their interest in the natural world.
to the prairies in case I needed her further north. I have
Garten, a school principal from Thunder Bay, had
photographs of her at the crest of a buffalo jump in
159
• Daylight in the Swamp • southern Saskatchewan, beside a glacial boulder the size
mine by day and taught basic English at night. This was
of a house in the foothills of the Rockies, and next to the
thanks to Frontier College, a uniquely Canadian
hoodoos of the Milk River in southern Ontario. My canoe
institution that found bush jobs for university students,
may even have set a record for being the most frequently
requiring them to instruct new Canadians in English and
airborne of all canoes.
other basic subjects. In later years, Kee and Peter were also
In the fall of 1957 I had recorded eleven rock painting
to work their way through university with Frontier
sites in Quetico Provincial Park. I had heard of three or
College. Christopher got his bush work experience during
four outside the park and could also recall the Blindfold
a summer with the Junior Rangers.
Lake site, mentioned above. I decided that next summer I
From 1959 to 1965, Peter and Christopher alternated
would record all the remaining sites in Ontario and
as my field assistants in work that extended from the
adjacent Minnesota. The Royal Ontario Museum was
foothills of the Rockies to the Atlantic coast. In the early
pleased with my report and with the watercolour
years, one major problem plagued my field work. How
reproductions that I had brought back. They had no
should I record the pictographs? I took slides of
trouble persuading the Quetico Foundation to put up the
everything, but these did not have the accuracy and scale
funds for a second summer.
of larger representations. I wanted to trace the figures
In the meantime I wrote an article about pictographs
directly onto some medium. I thought of acetate sheets
for The Beaver magazine. This brought in over thirty
and ordinary tracing paper, but these were difficult to
letters from across Canada. The letters, which came from
handle from a canoe at the water's edge. Then I thought
as far away as British Columbia, made it clear that I had
of using rice paper and Conte crayon. The idea was to
more work ahead of me than I had bargained for. I also
select a crayon that had a shade most closely matching a
wrote the president of Volkswagen Canada and
pictograph, then applying the crayon to the figure as
astonished the local VW agency by having a deluxe
exactly as I could. Then I would apply the rice paper to
minibus purchase approved at wholesale prices!
the figure, dampen it with a sponge, and rub the figure
The second expedition included Irene, Peter and his
lightly. This had the effect of "pulling" a reverse print of
exchange guest from Quebec, and Christopher, who had
the pictograph from the rock—without damaging the
just turned seven. Kee, now seventeen, went with us as far
original I hasten to add.
as Blind River, where we dropped him, with five dollars in
When I tried this technique in the field, it didn't work
his pocket, to look for work. Donner, meanwhile, had a
all that well, although I did get a successful transfer of an
steady job at Elliott Lake where he worked in a uranium
elaborate canoe at the Pictured Lake site near Thunder 160
• Daylight in the Swamp • Bay. However, the next dozen sites were in Minnesota.
and rock paintings then known in Alberta. I've combed
The last of these were petroglyphs, drawings incised in
the Shield woodlands from Great Slave Lake in the
horizontal stone instead of painted on rock. It was my
northwest to Lake Mistassini in Quebec and south into
first experience with petroglyphs.
Minnesota. I've also visited clusters of petroglyph sites in
I had just got my sponge and paper ready, with a cup
Nova Scotia and the B. C. coast. Yet, after one look at the
of water handy, to try the experiment, when Chris came
files on rock art at the National Museum of Man in
exuberantly along and, not noticing the cup, kicked it
Ottawa, I realized that British Columbia was so rich in
over. The water spilled onto a sheet of rice paper that had
coastal petroglyphs and the interior so rich in rock
been lying, quite accidentally, over a petroglyph. Presto!
paintings, that it would be presumptuous to cross the
The paper became completely transparent, revealing the
Rockies. After all, I'm not the only pebble on the
form beneath. I traced the figure directly onto the paper.
pictographic beach.
The technique worked just as well on the vertical rock
It's true that I was a loner for the first few years but
faces of pictographs. I found that if I held the paper over
even then John Corner, a British Columbian researcher,
the rock, then went over it with a wet sponge, it would
had been recording pictographs in the B.C. interior and
cling to the rock, following every bump and cranny, until
Edward Meade, another B.C. researcher, had worked on
I traced an outline of each figure. The technique failed
coastal petroglyphs. By the late 1960s, several others had
only on the very faintest pictographs. It provided me,
joined the field, including Tim Jones and Zenon
moreover, with an exact size outline, unaffected by the
Pohorecky at the University of Saskatchewan, Ken
surface variations or oblique angles that affect most
Dawson at Lakehead University, Romas and Joan
photographs.
Vastokas at Trent University, Brian Molyneaux at the
Sometimes, in reply to casual acquaintances who ask
Royal Ontario Museum, and Gilles Tasse at the University
me, with no real interest, what I do, I have an answer
of Quebec. By 1969 there were enough individuals
ready: "It so happens that I'm the greatest living authority
infected by pictograph fever to launch an informal
on aboriginal art in Boreal North America east of the
organization under the auspices of K.C.A. Dawson at
Rockies." To be specific, I have visited, as of 1978, exactly
Lakehead University. We decided to call the new
three hundred and one rock art sites in Canada and the
organization the Canadian Rock Art Research Associates.
adjacent American states. I have personally recorded all
Membership embraced a wide variety of backgrounds:
but nine of these.
artists, archaeologists, art historians, lab technicians,
Between 1959 and 1963 I recorded all the petroglyphs 161
conservation scientists, and even an apiarist! At this
• Daylight in the Swamp • writing there are more than thirty associates, of whom a
Almost invariably, pictographs were painted on
full third are active in one way or another. The study has
vertical or near-vertical rock faces next to the water,
turned out to be very complex: the research into the
occasionally on large boulders but usually on cliffs. Often,
problem of dating the sites is especially so.
the sites seem associated with places that have a special
Who painted the pictographs and how did they do it?
quality, not always easy to put into words. There may be a
Undoubtedly, they were drawn by aboriginal people in
large cleft in the rock nearby or a waterfall, or the setting
response to special events or spiritual experiences,
itself may have an eerie feeling, perhaps an unearthly
presumably most often by the shaman or his colleagues.
quiet. Often, the cliff itself is the most massive formation
The actual materials seem to have been red ochre as the
of rock for miles around.
pigment, and fish oil, or on occasion spit, as the binder.
Pictographic subjects range from hand-prints and
There seems little doubt that the Shield aborigines knew
smears to more or less naturalistic renderings of humans
how to heat the yellow ochre found in ferric earth deposits
and animals. Snakes, water birds, bears, wolves, foxes,
to the anhydrous form, red oxide. It was at La Ronge in
turtles, deer, moose, horses, and further east even bison,
northern Saskatchewan that a Cree gentleman by the
may be found on the rock faces.
name of B-Amos Ratt told me how he took earth from a
Beside these natural forms, you also see a wide variety
deposit on the Churchill River, reddened it by bringing it
of supernatural beings. There is the thunderbird who lives
to a white heat in a frying pan, then mixed it with oil from
in the sky and the "water-lion" Mishipizhiw, who dwells in
a whitefish. He had used the resulting reddish-brown
and controls the waters. Also called the "great lynx,"
paint to waterproof his log cabin and his paddles.
Mishipizhiw especially prefers fast or troubled waters,
Other reports single out sturgeon oil as the binder.
where he may be propitiated, perhaps, by a gift of tobacco.
However, the oil as a binder may not have been strictly
Other supernatural beings included the mysterious
necessary in the long run. After all, the iron in the ochre
Maymaygwayshi. The Cree describe them as small
has a natural affinity with many of the minerals in
creatures, about three feet high, who live inside the rock.
granite and it will bond, in time, to almost any granitic
The Ojibwa refer to them as ghosts or spirits. In general,
rock face. On several sites I have seen evidence of the
the Maymaygwayshi are thought to live behind rock faces
paint running, as if blowing rain had partially dissolved
by the water, especially those where cracks or shallow
it before it set. This suggests that saliva may have made a
caves suggest an entrance. They are fond of fish and
convenient if inferior binder if fish happened not to be
frequently steal them from nets. They are extremely shy,
available at the moment.
however, owing to faces that, according to some Natives, 762
Figure 55. Pictographs of naturalistic beings
Figure 56, Pictographs of supernatural beings
• Daylight in the Swamp • are covered with fur. According to others, the
below show two of the site faces and the pictographs on
Maymaygwayshi lack noses.
them. Stippling gives the general effect, but the
Most of the evidence I have seen so far suggests that many of the rock paintings represented dreams, and
paintings themselves, of course, are in solid, if somewhat faded ochre.
were intended to enhance their effect. From this point of
Face IX has some easily recognizable animal figures on
view the distinction between naturalistic and
it, including a caribou with its spreading antlers and a
supernatural forms is probably spurious. At Grassy
moose with its rack and chin-bell. The elongated vertical
Narrows on the Winnipeg River, Johnny Loon sat by his
figure just might be a water bird, and the humanoid
drying nets. "That's what they dreamed of, the ones that
figure at the top represents either a person or a spirit in
drawed." Francis Tom at Sioux Narrows was equally
the form of a person. The circle with rays descending
positive. "A lot of those guys, they done some fasting
might refer to the sun, a weather element, or something
where they have those paintings ... whatever you see on
that no one but initiates would recognize. The horned
the paintings, that's what they seen in their dreams. I
beast on the left, however, is most probably a variant
hear this from my grandfather and dad and others, too.
rendering of Mishipizhiw, the water lion or great lynx.
That's why I put tobacco there." Other native people,
You may compare it with the Mishipizhiw from the
however, are equally sure that the Maymaygwayshi
earlier examples only to discover that the points along the
themselves are the real artists.
back are missing.
Perhaps a visit to a typical site will tie some of these
Face VII is more mysterious. Here are what seem to be
threads together in the reader's mind. In the previous
canoes with people in them, a moose, two crosses (one on
chapter I mentioned the visit that Irene and I made in
its side), several human figures, and, just above a crack
1942 to Fairy Point on Lake Missinaibi. I promised to
near some tally marks, a horned figure. This may or may
revisit the site in the present chapter.
not represent a Maymaygwayshi, partially lost through
Lake Missinaibi lies a little less than fifty miles north (and a bit west) of Chapleau, Ontario. At Fairy Point,
fading. Most of this particular face occupies a slab of rock that is separated from the surrounding cliff by cracks.
enormous cliffs dominate the lake. Near their base, there
I wish I could roll back the curtain of mystery and
are nine separate faces or areas where you may find
make their meaning plain, but that has been the hard part
pictographs. The site is atypically large in this respect,
of pictograph research. In pursuit of meanings, I have
but the figures themselves show the usual blend of the
interviewed over a hundred elders and knowledgeable
recognizable and the indecipherable. The illustrations
native people about pictographs, dreams, legends, beliefs,
164
Figure 57. Pictographs - Fairy Point, Face IX
Figure 58, P i c t o g r a p h s - Fairy Point, Face
• Daylight in the Swamp • anything I could get my hands on. In particular, I have
knew the country better than I did. As we descended the
tried to find out all I could about the Midaywaywin
Churchill River, near the end of my stay, we came to
spiritual system, it being closely tied to the central
Silent Rapids. In other rapids I had always paddled hard
mystery of the rock paintings.
to gain steerage way in the current, following where the
Two examples stand out as noteworthy.
current was strongest. But just as we were nearing the end
In the settlement of La Ronge, in northern
of the fall, I found the canoe turning toward a backwash,
Saskatchewan, there are so many Ratt families that
where water churned against the river. I tried to pull the
residents have taken to putting an alphabetic prefix in
bow straight, only to discover that A-Joe was deliberately
front of their first name. I never met B-Joe Ratt, but one
heading for the backwash. Thanks to my extra hard
A-Joe Ratt, having heard from his father, B-Amos Ratt,
paddling, we nearly capsized.
that I was looking for pictograph sites, volunteered to
As soon as we landed below the falls, A-Joe made me
show me no less than six I'd never seen before. A-Joe Ratt
sit in the bottom of the canoe as a passenger. We then
was not a shaman, it seemed. In fact, people had warned
continued and A-Joe handled the next bit of fast water
me that he was the biggest con-man in La Ronge. It was
alone. Much later, he explained that he had gone for the
therefore with some trepidation that I arranged a flight
backwater because an evil manitou dwelt in the middle of
for us up to Eulas Lake in the Churchill area, where A-Joe
Silent Rapids.
had a fishing cabin. The plane from Natural Resources flew me, A-Joe and my canoe up to Eulas Lake.
A key informant for my book, Sacred Scrolls of the Southern Ojibway, was James Redsky, Senior.
In the next four days, A-Joe and I visited the six spots
Eshquaykeeshik (Equal Sky), as Redsky is known in
that he had earlier pinpointed on a topographical map.
Ojibway, was one of the last practitioners of the Miday
The sites were all exactly where he said they were. More
religion at Shoal Lake, west of Thunder Bay. He was
than this, A-Joe filled me in on more natural history,
invaluable in showing me the meanings of some of the
from animals tracks to plants, than I could possibly
instruction scrolls I had come across and copied during
remember. I can recall only fragments, such as his
my travels.
description of the seven calls of the loon. The seventh call, said A-Joe, "he only makes when he sees an eagle, He's saying,'You are the king.'"
He told me how, when he was a child, a missionary once told him, "Your religion is bad." How could the Midaywaywin, with its focus on
There was more than mere lore to A-Joe. Normally I
physical and spiritual health, be bad, the boy asked
don't give the stern of my canoe to anyone, but A-Joe
himself. Redsky's uncle, Baldhead, was the most
166
• Daylight in the Swamp • prestigious Miday practitioner, and chief shaman in the
traditions onto the reserve. It was symptomatic that
annual initiation ceremonies. As Redsky described it,
Redsky's ceremony, which I had been invited to watch
Baldhead was a "man who knew EV-er-y-thing," rolling
and record, was attended only women and children. The
the syllables with a solemnity that gave a vastly broader
Minister of Family and Social Services was visiting that
meaning to the word. A complete knowledge of Miday
very afternoon and the men considered it more
rites included ways to convey sickness or even death to
important to air their grievances with him than to take
certain people. Such destructive sorcery was but one of
part in a ceremony that they no longer understood or
the temptations on the path. The scrolls give a clear
cared about.
warning. Beside the zigzag path of life that emerges from
The ceremony, though abbreviated, bore at least some
the fourth-degree lodge, a snake diverges from the final
elements of Miday ritual. Redsky had built a sacred lodge,
turn, a clear symbol of the disaster that overtakes initiates
or Midaywegun, a rectangle of earth about fourteen by
who misuse the spiritual powers conferred on them.
forty feet with an east-west orientation. The walls of the
In spite of some negative experiences with Christians,
lodge, about two feet high, were constructed of brush and
Redsky succeeded in convincing himself that it would be
stakes. A pole with a thhunderbird attached to the top
possible to unite Christianity with the Miday religion by
stood in the centre of the lodge. Near the base of the pole,
taking the best from both. He seemed well on his way to
Redsky had placed a large stone.
success when he persuaded the Presbyterians to build
By eleven-thirty in the morning, the ceremony was to
their new mission church a stone's throw from the site of
have begun, but no one had showed up yet! Suddenly, we
the annual Miday ceremonies. Peter and I arrived to
heard Redsky singing and shaking his sacred rattle. We
observe and record the ceremony (at Redsky's invitation)
turned to see him limping toward the lodge, entering the
in June of 1969, shortly after Redsky completed a Miday
east entrance alone. Normally, the shaman would have
Lodge hard by the church.
four assistants, but none had shown up. His son Ken, who
Evil days had fallen on the Shoal Lake community. It
was to have been there, had rushed off to the hospital that
was now a simple matter to drive over to Kenora, cash a
morning, his young wife in labour pains. Another
family allowance cheque, and buy enough liquor to have a
assistant had the only functioning drum, but he hadn't
real "party." Drinking and violence had been steadily
shown up either.
growing since the fifties. Meanwhile, graduates of the
Redsky went as far as the west entrance, reserved for
Presbyterian residential school had learned to scorn their
manitous, and stopped there. "Now it's open," he said. He
mother tongue and increasingly brought "white"
disappeared into the schoolhouse. A moment later he
167
• Daylight in the Swamp • reappeared with a steaming pot of rice and raisins, food
initiate by the name of Mrs. Greene. She had brought a
for the Maymaygwayshi. He set the pot beside the stone
beef hash, which everyone ate while she opened her
by the pole and looked around, as though missing
Miday bag and displayed the contents: meegis shells,
something. I produced two packages of fine-cut tobacco
meegis cloths, a large Miday scroll, a smaller one, and a
and Redsky was delighted. He sprinkled the stone and
few smaller items I didn't get to see closely.
some coloured sticks that lay upon it liberally with tobacco.
Sometime in this period, Redsky, without any observable utterance or gesture, dedicated the offerings
Redsky seated himself against the middle of the south
to the Maymaygwayshi. It was not clear to Peter or me
wall opposite the pole. Then the Presbyterian minister
just when the ceremony ended, but by two-fifteen in the
and his son joined us. They joined Peter and me in the
afternoon, Mrs. Greene and Mr. Wahpiosk began to
northeast corner of the midaywegun. As women and
pack up the Miday material and the others began to
children began to arrive from the reserve, Redsky made a
leave.
dissertation on the meaning of the Miday religion, then
Redshy was not in the best of health. He limped from
stood up, produced a mickey of rye whiskey, and
arthritis, and he had split open one of his shoes to
proceeded around the midaywegun, pouring some into a
accomodate the swelling on the ball of his big toe. He also
bowl for each participant. It resembled a communion
suffered from frequent dizzy spells. Was this to be the last
service but Redsky had already told me that the whiskey
Miday ceremony?
was a substitute for the dog's blood used in the original
Not until the following morning, however, did I get
ritual. With each sip of whiskey, Redsky distributed a little
the full picture of just how much things were changing.
tobacco. He noticed some boys watching with interest
My son Peter and I had slept in the schoolhouse that
from the church steps, and beckoned them over. The boys
night, and the next morning we took our gear down to
all came in by the forbidden west entrance, but this didn't
the dock to await a boat that would take us out. The dock
seem to bother Redsky. By now some thirty-four souls sat
belonged to the storekeeper who lived nearby.
around the Miday lodge. One adult male had joined us,
Presently, the man came down to the dock but, instead
one Robert Wahpiosk. It was he who served the rice and
of exchanging pleasantries, he told me we were
raisins to everyone.
trespassing and to get the hell off his dock. In the heated
Then Redsky delivered a short homily, including a
conversation that followed, he accused me of "making
thanksgiving for the past year and a prayer for health and
fun" of the Midaywaywin. I assured him that I was
good fortune in the coming year. Redsky had a female
attempting the very opposite.
168
Daylight in the Swamp "Your children are losing their language and religion. I'm trying ..." "Don't you criticize my children!" He gave me a shove and I tumbled to the ground. In his anger he obviously thought I meant his own children rather than the Ojibway children, generally. Just then Peter came over the rise, bearing the last load from the schoolhouse. The storekeeper decided to fade away. When he heard what had happened, Redsky made a cryptic comment. "Don't worry. We'll fix him." He hailed a passing motorboat and saw us off. James Redsky had been invaluable in helping me interpret the Miday scrolls. Through the scrolls, I hoped to learn something about the meaning of the pictographs. Every scroll contains a configuration of separate graphic symbols that together serve to remind the knowledgeable reader of certain legends and myths. Perhaps the pictographs also serve as memory aids or memorials, images of forgotten dreams. As for Redsky, he may have failed to unite the two religions of his life, but it was a magnificent failure. He was a warrior in the true sense and Redsky has earned a place among the great ones of his people.
169
This page intentionally left blank
chapter fourteen
IslandDqQuest
/ looked at Manitowik but the whole damn Lake has been
Gull Lake was just inside the Canadian Shield, it wasn't
flooded by a lumber dam or a power dam, I don't give a
quite what we had in mind.
damn which.
We had already decided what qualities our summer
From a letter to Irene, dated June 1942
dream home would have. First, it would be an island, Loon Island.
It was in the early 1940s that I finally agreed with Irene that we needed a place in the bush we could call our own. Until then, while Irene yearned for a fixed place in the bush, I had temporized. Wasn't the whole north our "home"? Besides, no matter where we ended up, it was sure to be flooded, sooner or later, by tourists of one kind or another... On the other hand, I agreed that a summer home in the right place would make an ideal launching site for canoe trips. It would also provide fond memories of a summer home, like those I enjoy of Sand Lake. In the meantime, we had grabbed vacations when and where we could, including a few weeks at Gull Lake where Irene's sister Florence Ecclestone had some cabins. Although
171
Figure 59. Christmas card made by Selwyn Dewdney, 1942
• Daylight in the Swamp • Wherever our island might be, it would not be leased, but owned outright. In the 1940s you could buy Crown
what was left of the day, so we would camp overnight. Ah, the energy of youth!
land almost anywhere in Canada for a nominal price plus
Searching the map further north, I had also discovered
a commitment to put up some kind of building on the
Lake Missinaibi, headwater of the the Missinaibi River,
property. Our island would be on an isolated lake without
Besides reminding me of my Geological Survey days, it
road access. This would eliminate other summer residents
looked promising as an alternative dream lake. I decided
and tourists. It would also be far enough from the
to take a look at Missinaibi first, then Little Wawa.
mainland shore to exclude bears, and small enough that
When high school ended that spring I plundered the
on a windy day all the flies would blow away. The
bank account of money earned from the sale of paintings,
surrounding country would offer a variety of interesting
then borrowed the extra I needed to buy a canoe and a
canoe routes. The island itself would have a nice sandy
return railway ticket to Nicholson on Lake Windermere.
beach for the kids, a beach you could land a canoe on. It
As soon as summer began, Irene would drop the kids,
would have an outcrop of precambrian rock or maybe be Donner and Keewatin, with her parents in Kitchener, such an outcrop. If it weren't be asking too much, the
then come up to Nicholson to meet me. I bought the
island would also have a stand of God's most beautiful
canoe at Eaton's in Toronto, had her shipped to the town
tree, the white pine. Failing that, we'd settle for a stand of
of Missanabie, following her two weeks later,
red pine or, at the very least, a mixed stand of spruce, jackpine, birch and poplar.
En route to Missanabie, I reached Chapleau, where I had to change trains from the transcontinental to the
In the winter of 1941-42,1 pored over my collection of
local. I put in my wait by striking up a conversation with
topographical maps, seeking this special combination of
the express agent. Chapleau was then a town of some
features. After locating and rejecting a dozen possible
1800 souls, a population almost totally dependent on the
sites, I thought I had found exactly what I was looking
CPR's divisional point operation there,
for, a lake called Little Wawa in the Chapleau area. The
The agent showed me a barbell that someone in the
lake was peppered with islands, had an irregular shoreline
machine shop had made for him out of two locomotive
suggesting plentiful outcrops, and no map symbols to
pistons. He demonstrated the ease with which he could
suggest so much as a trapper's cabin. It was a bit far from
press them. Dropped with a great thump on the floor,
the nearest rail stop, about fifteen miles. Nevertheless, we
they sounded heavy.
would get off the train there, buy groceries, and set out
"Have a try. Usta do that twenty times a day. There's
for Little Wawa. We might not make the fifteen miles in
only three fellas in Chapleau can lift that." I tried to lift 772
Daylight in the Swamp Figure 60, Missinaibie, 1942
the barbell. "No. You gotta bend your knees and straighten out your arms, same time."
Missanabie, hardly more than a CPR whistle stop, stood on the north shore of Dog Lake which was joined
I took off my coat and, by the third try, had mastered
by a stream to neighbouring Manitowik Lake. Travelling
it. I expected him to be as surprised as I was, or perhaps
for the first time with Olga, I began reconoitering for
annoyed, but he grinned delightedly, pleased at his
Loon Island, then wrote the sad report, quoted at the
success as a teacher.
head of this chapter, to Irene.
I caught the local, and a half hour later I descended
There wasn't a decent campsite on the whole lake.
onto the Missanabie station platform. My new canoe had
Nevertheless I spent a week in the area, getting in some
been shipped two weeks earlier and awaited me patiently
good sketching. I can recall only one of my oil sketches. I
in the baggage room. The station master, one Irving
began the painting on a hot, muggy day with a steamy
Layton [sic], ushered me into the semi-dark where the
haze that lingered on and on. This weather continued for
new canoe sat packed in straw and sewn into sacking. My
several days. I laboured on the painting until I became
hands trembled as I cut the binding and tenderly stripped
frantic for some clear, northern air.
her coverings away. She lay there in the semi-dark in all
The subject was a creek that flowed into the lake. I
her sleek beauty. Olga. Why "Olga"? We had decided to
deliberately set myself the exercise of catching the
give this name to our first daughter, whenever she might
sunlight on the stones under the water. I began to curse
come. For Irene, the name evoked the Russia of
myself for choosing such a difficult subject but I stayed
Dostoyevsky and Tolstoy of which she was so fond.
with it. When I had finally finished, it still seemed a lack-
173
• Daylight in the Swamp • lustre effort. Only when I got home again and reviewed
Jack told me how he spent his winters in Toronto.
the summer's work did I discover that it was one of the
Every spring at breakup he would take the train north, get
best things I'd done that summer.
off at some station on one of the main lines, then spend
During my explorations of Manitowik Lake, I must
the summer prospecting an area of a thousand square
have passed within yards of a pictograph site, completely
miles. By the end of the season he would arrive at the
unaware of its presence. Years later, when I began
other main line and take the train home.
pictographic research, I learned that at the base of a
Jack also told me about some rock paintings at a place
certain high rock at the west end of Manitouwik there
called Fairy Point on Lake Missinaibi. I became curious to
was an assemblage of aboriginal rock paintings. I never
see whether they would turn out to resemble the ones on
noticed them because, thanks to the dam, only the fish
faraway Blindfold Lake, south of Kenora. In the morning
could see them.
I said goodbye to Jack and set out for Lake Missinaibi,
A week after arriving in Missanabie, I set out for Lake
paddling and portaging the remaining miles. The lake
Missinaibi. On the way I puzzled over the name. The
was large and open, with long vistas. It was ten miles
station master at Missanabie had told me that the name
long, just large enough to show up on most atlases of
of the town (and, presumably the lake) had originated as
Canada. I was aware, as I paddled, of the lake's history,
a tribute to a certain nurse back in the days when the
how it had been on a major fur route in the days when
town was under construction. Miss Anabie. But I suspect
fur brigades travelled out to Moose Factory to meet the
that the name of the Lake is simply a corruption of the
Hudson's Bay Company ships.
Algonkian word Mazinahbikaung, or "place of pictures."
By nightfall I had found Fairy Point, an engaging
Paddling up Crooked Lake, I came upon the camp
subject to paint, and an ideal campsite. The rock art held
where I met a seasoned prospector and generally fabulous
me. Similar to the Blindfold Lake paintings, but different.
character by the name of Jack Ennis. This was the same
I paddled to the east side of Missinaibi to discover a
Jack Ennis who would offer me the bush job that took me
perfect tumble of water, Whitefish Falls, where the Little
north again the next year (see Chapter 10). Although I
Missinaibi River emptied into the lake. And not far off, a
wouldn't compare my limited experience with his decades
beautiful sandy spit with a new growth of cedar. Here I
of bush travel, we quickly discovered our common
pitched my tent, cooked some supper, and just had time
passion and hit it off very quickly. I ended by joining him
to enjoy the evening frolics of two beavers who lived in a
for supper. We got talking and soon it was too late to
nearby lodge.
travel, so I stayed for the night.
I wanted to spend a few days at the waterfall, but time 774
• Daylight in the Swamp • was growing short. I had yet to find Loon Island, and
couldn't remember had been out in a canoe that subsided
Irene was due to come up in less than two weeks. I
gently under the waves. This created a distinct feeling of
paddled back out to Missanabie and caught the first local
doom so I consulted my orange oracle: if I could peel an
south, packing Olga into the baggage car. I got off at the
orange in one continuous peeling, it was a good omen. If
town of Nicholson where I provisioned at the Austin
at some point the peel nearly broke, I took it as a warning
Lumber Company store.
that the prospect might have some difficulty. If it actually
Within the hour, I was on my way to Little Wawa, the
broke, the prospect was doomed.
ideal lake, chosen from my topographical maps the
The peeling broke almost immediately. Mosquitoes
previous winter. Here I would find Loon Island. I paddled
swarmed about me in that hell-hole of a country. I
down a long channel of Windermere called Grassy Inlet,
struck camp and set out for Little Wawa only to discover
then came to a portage that began beside a steep, twelve-
that the map had been wrong. There was not one more
foot falls. The portage took me past a pond that was
portage into our dream-lake, but four more. When at
almost a lake, then up into completely different country,
last I stood on the sandy shore of Little Wawa, I looked
Here was Grazing River, as dismal a bit of water as I'd
all around. Nothing but beaches and no rocks of any
ever seen. A lumber dam had flooded out the shores
description. I launched the canoe and carefully explored
leaving dead, bleached tree skeletons leaning at all angles,
the lake. It turned out to be so shallow that I could see
There was a hot, southwest wind that threatened rain. I
its sandy bottom wherever I paddled. I found the
had just started the second portage, when thunder began
forestry cabin I'd seen on the map but it was a wreck,
to roll across the sky. I raced to get up the tent and start a
The only rocks I found were boulders, three in total,
fire before the rain began. I pitched the tent on a slope,
Around and around I went, back and forth. "Oh God," I
the only place I could find in that God-forsaken dump,
prayed, "couldn't you give me just one island made of
finishing just as the rain started. Sitting in the tent, I
rock?" But God wouldn't. That was the last of Little
attempted some morale-boosting. In spite of the
Wawa I would see for thirty years.
miserable landscape, our dream island lay just ahead. The rain lasted into the evening so I camped for the night.
Little Wawa was really a lovely little lake in its own peculiar way and it was filled with loons. The map had
The next morning I awoke from a dream in which
been right about the islands. There were lots of them, all
someone was offering a hot-water bottle to revive Irene. I
alike. But everywhere I went on that lake I could see only
had rescued her from the bottom of a lake. Irene, my
sand and gravel shores nearly crowded out of existence by
mother, one of my brothers, and some other people I
a dense growth of trees. I vowed I would never again
175
• Daylight in the Swamp • made the mistake of trying to guess the character of a Canadian Shield lake by its outline on a map.
River, joining the Moose River to emerge on James Bay. Out on the water, we could easily make out the
Nine days later I pitched my tent on the shore of
rocky point that split West Bay from the main lake. As
Nicholson Bay. Next morning the transcontinental pulled
we approached the big cliffs, they loomed overhead in
into Nicholson and there was Irene, just as I landed,
the early evening sun. We caught a little of that
crossing the tracks and running toward the beach. She
aboriginal awe, both of the overhanging masses of rock
wore calf-length culottes, a sweatshirt, and she carried a
and of the figures themselves. The paintings were
briefcase. Three year old Donner and baby Kee were safe
overgrown here and there by vivid splashes of orange
with their Kitchener grandparents, Olga was waiting and
lichen. It was getting late, however. I promised myself a
we were free!
sketch of the site, and we made our way to the same
We camped on an island I had discovered half way
campsite I had used at Whitefish Falls. Again a perfect
down Grazing Inlet. The island had a perfect campsite
evening. Irene was charmed by my beaver friends. They
and we stayed there a week. Then we took the train to
cavorted in the water around our camp, slapping their
Missanabie with Olga in the baggage car. We camped on
tails on the water with a sound like a small boulder
the shore of Dog Lake right across from the Missanabie
plunging into the water. In the morning we could hear
station, with lots of time to paddle around and visit. We
the beaver kittens whimpering under the solid mud and
encountered George Sanders, an eighty-year-old Ojibway
stick roof of their lodge.
whom I asked about the rock paintings on Lake
We spent four wonderful days at the Whitefish Falls
Missinaibi. He had grown up in the area but even when
campsite. We swam every day. Irene soaked in the sun and
he was a small boy the oldest people had no idea who had
made the meals, assisted by a spring that delivered ice-
made the inscriptions. We met another old-timer who
cold water not far from the campsite. I developed a
told us that we had better stay away from the big rock. He
passable oil-sketch of Whitefish Falls. Whenever we
claimed that "a bull moose got sucked down right by
wanted fish for supper, I would trawl for about ten
them pictures."
minutes in the bay with nothing more complicated than a
The next day, we set out for Missinaibi. Our last portage took us indiscernibly over the divide between the
line, a sinker, and a spinner. That's all it took to haul in a fine jackfish or pickerel.
Arctic and Atlantic drainage basins. Dog Lake drained
We took a walk over the portage around the falls.
southwest into the Michipicoten system and Lake
Along the trail we had glimpses of the Little Missinaibi
Superior. Missinaibi Lake flowed into the Missinaibi
River, a series of stony terraces that wouldn't take a
176
• Daylight in the Swamp • loaded canoe. Years later our oldest son, Donner, would
brightness of the sky, then getting gloomier by the
attempt this river with his wife, Victoria. They would
minute. The cross-waves reflected from the cliff chopped
break their hearts paddling, lifting and dragging their
the water up into mounds that would form suddenly
canoe for the first few miles only to decide that this was
beneath the canoe, tossing us like a cork. The squall was
not the holiday they had come for.
getting nearer, more wind, bigger waves, blacker sky.
Spying a cliff near the entrance to our bay, Irene was sure there would be pictographs on it. And so there were.
Finally, Irene was ready as we pulled alongside the pictographs.
I made careful copies of them, the first time I had ever
One snap and we were off, Irene leaping to her seat to
bothered to record a pictograph. In 1957, I would begin
paddle. It was as exciting a bit of water as we were ever to
in earnest.
paddle together. If George Sanders or the other old-timer
On the fifth day we decided it was time to pull up
back in Missinaibi had seen it, they would have nodded
stakes and head for home. Irene missed her babies and
to each other. No good is likely to come from a visit to
her parents would undoubtedly be looking for relief. We
Fairy Point.
decided to visit Fairy Point on our way out to photograph
By 1943, the war was becoming a nightmare, even in
the rock paintings. A strong southwest wind blew up the
sheltered London, Ontario. There was the same pull
long arm of the lake, freshening as the hours went by.
towards God's country but the teacher's privileged two-
With Olga fully loaded for the trip to Missinaibi, we
month holiday was better spent seeking gainful
worked our way along the east shore of the lake, taking
employment. The dream of Loon Island began gradually
full advantage of what little lee it offered, until we were in
to fade from our minds, the search postponed until the
position for a dash across open water to the point.
end of the war, whenever that might be.
We had intended to spend the morning there, but that
(I have only visited the Whitefish Falls site once since
was now out of the question. Out of the sheltering lee, we
that first idyll. In 1976, my nineteenth year of recording
tossed on big rollers, broadside to the canoe. Olga took
aboriginal rock art across Canada, I visited Lake
them gallantly, even though heavily loaded. Nearing the
Missinaibi to find that the Ontario Ministry of Natural
point, I saw a squall in the making a mile down the lake. I
Resources had opened a new provincial park on the
had Irene sit in the bottom of the canoe and get the
northeast shore of the Lake. The park had campsites for
camera ready while I tried to navigate the tricky water
campers and canoers alike. You could drive to the new
just opposite the cliff. There were no exposure meters in
park on a road from Chapleau. With an influx of new
those days. Irene had to set the f-stop according to the
visitors, the best campsite on the lake, the place of our
177
• Daylight in the Swamp • former joy, had become somewhat overused. The lovely
Ministry of Natural Resources. It was a novel experience
row of cedars had been killed by high water and the
to travel with four individuals, all of whom had different
campsite had sprouted signs that forbade cooking fires
but firm ideas on every conceivable question. There were
and picnicking. Only Whitefish Falls, source of the Little
arguments about where to camp, even about which
Missinaibi River, remained as it had been.)
channel to follow.
I would see Jack Ennis again on the following summer,
On the second last day of the trip we stopped at
as I related in Chapter 11. The packing job kept me too
Blindfold Lake, visited the original pictograph site, then
busy to search for our island home.
discovered another painting, small and badly flaked,
Dreams of a northern retreat resurfaced again in 1967,
below the dam. We camped that night on a sandy point
when Irene suggested that I take the four sons on a canoe
where two neglected cottages quietly mouldered. It was
trip in Lake of the Woods as a centennial project. Since
not Loon Island, not even an island at all, but we went
1957 I had been free to travel the land to search for and
overboard for it when we discovered that the beach was
record aboriginal rock paintings. Irene made this possible
littered with artefacts: sherds, points, scrapers. It was
by filling in for me as an art therapist at Westminster
obviously a favourite campsite in earlier times. You could
Hospital and at the Ontario Psychiatric Hospital during
only get there by water, too, with heavy bush between the
my absence. In the early summer of 1967 I took Irene to
point and the nearest road.
Expo '67. Then we drove out to Nova Scotia to spend a
We enthusiastically discussed buying the place so,
few days camping at the Kejimkujik petroglyph site in
when we got back to Kenora, we looked up the owner of
Nova Scotia.
the property. Back in London, I telephoned him. Alas!
I met my four sons late in the summer at Sioux Narrows on Lake of the Woods. We planned to travel
That particular dream died a swift death when he told me he wanted $35,000 for the place.
south to Sunset Channel, around to Yellow Girl, then
Since 1957 I had been spending my summers on field
back to Kenora. We had a week of perfect weather and a
trips to find and record pictograph sites, but by the 1970s
wind that obliged us by blowing in whatever direction we
I was beginning to slow down a bit physically and Irene
happened to be travelling for five straight days. This also
still yearned for a summer getaway. Irene's friend Jane
made it possible for us to sail a total of eighty miles.
Bigelow suggested that we try a month at her mother's
We travelled in two canoes. Donner and Chris
cottage on Talon Lake, east of North Bay. Formerly a fall
manned the family canoe while Kee and Peter were my
hunting cabin, it had fallen into disuse. We enjoyed
crew in a seventeen foot canoe borrowed from the
ourselves fixing up the property, but Talon Lake was 178
• Daylight in the Swamp • already heavily inhabited with summer cottages, with
"just the place." He spoke glowingly of a long beach with
boats and water-skiers all too frequently visible.
a cabin on it, beautiful sunsets, and an owner eager to
In short, the "Bigelow Bungalow", as we called it, was only a Band-Aid on Irene's itch for a summer place of our
sell. We so warmed to the prospect that he decided to run us out there.
own. Again I tried the "whole north is ours" argument,
It still rained and the wind was blowing half a gale
but it didn't work. After all, I got to go on field trips for
across the lake. The all-metal double-hulled boat had a
up to two months every summer, while Irene stayed at
hundred-horsepower motor that propelled us at such a
home. It was time to find that island!
speed that each time we hit a big wave we became briefly
On a grey day in July, 1971, we detoured through
airborne! We arrived at the proprietor's site to find a
Chapleau on our way to Talon Lake. There, we visited the
beautiful long beach, a small outcrop of bedrock and
Ministry of Natural Resources office and got a list of
even a stand of red pine. This lot seemed all the more
cottage sites for lease in the district. I should explain that
desirable in contrast to the properties we had just
new provincial legislation had frozen all sales of Crown
inspected. We decided to make an offer. Later that
land indefinitely. As a result, the only properties you
summer after we returned from Talon Lake we tried to
could buy outright must already be owned by someone
get in touch with the owner in Michigan. But he was far
else. A pilot I knew had already acquired a property on
from eager to sell. All we got were delaying tactics. Once
Dog Lake and this is where we found three sites on the
again our dream faded.
Chapleau list, laid out side by side along one shore. We
Then, in the spring of 1972, came our break. The
decided to extend our detour by driving to Missanabie to
previous summer I had been on a pictograph expedition
have a look at the properties. When we arrived, it was
on my way through Chapleau. I telephoned Irene and
pouring rain. But we hired a kicker, donned our rainwear,
she suggested a visit to the local real estate office. That's
and were off to the property sites.
how I met Albert Tremblay. He said he would keep his
It was a fiasco. We found the properties, but there was
eye peeled.
no sand to speak of and no rock formations. On the way
The next May we got a call from Tremblay. He had two
back to Missanabie through the drizzle, we made a brave
properties in mind, a lot by the highway and an island out
attempt to convince ourselves that it could work. We
on Lake Windermere.
turned in the boat and went into the little hotel and beer
Irene and I drove up to Sudbury and caught a local
parlour to warm up and revive flagging spirits. Then we
train that would drop us at a small stop called Healey, a
got talking to the proprietor who told us that he knew
mere road-crossing in the middle of the bush very close
179
Figure 61. Boat Channel Island, 1977
• Daylight in the Swamp • to the southeastern arm of Lake Windermere. There
climbed an ancient path through the bush,
stood Tremblay, beside the tracks. He took us through a
The cabin, which turned out to be a squared-log affair
small glade of pines to a fishing camp called Happy Day
about sixteen by twenty feet, seemed to be in good shape.
Lodge. Albert introduced us to the camp's proprietor, a
The path led directly onto a wooden porch that ended at
grizzled and taciturn fellow by the name of Len
a screen door. Here we could look over a railing at the
Houghton. Happy Day Lodge consisted of some dozen
rock below. Inside, the cabin was snug, partitioned into a
cabins and a log house where Len lived and conducted
small bedroom in the northwest corner and an L-shaped
camp business, including a small store, which, I noted,
living space. The kitchen occupied the north end of the
might be a handy source of casual supplies should the
L; there were two iceboxes and an old-fashioned cast-
island prove to be everything Albert said it was.
iron cooking stove. Along the south side of the cabin, a
I was prepared for disappointment, naturally, and
living-dining room charmed us immediately. It had a
when Albert's motor wouldn't start, it seemed like a bad
wood stove for heating, a plain wooden eating-table with
omen. We switched to a lodge fishing boat. About three
benches, a cot, and a row of windows that opened onto a
miles out from Happy Day, Windermere closed down to a
panorama of Lake Windermere itself, screened here and
single passage called the Narrows, then opened out into
there by red pines and birches. Looking out, we could see
the lake proper. We headed west for about a mile, then
no sign of human habitation anywhere on the lake. The
slowly turned north as we rounded the corner of the lake,
window screens fitted snugly. Everything fitted. It was
At first we did not see the island, but Albert kept pointing
snug. Irene and I looked at each other,
and shouting above the sound of the motor.
Albert took us around the island. We followed a trail
Then we saw it, half a mile away. There was some
that led to the north end. I had the pleasant sensation of
bedrock, a lot of trees, and a hint of red, the cabin roof,
being swallowed up by trees. I wouldn't even have known
Closer still, the island turned out to be much larger
I was on an island! The north end had some flat shelving
than I had expected, with a varied shoreline and even a
rock that led into the water by the makings of a beach,
few hints of beach. Albert took us into a shallow cove at
Here was a good spot for a second cabin,
the south end. He explained, over the sound of the
We returned to the south end again, went back down
idling motor, that there had a been a dock but the ice
to the little cove, then followed the path along the south
had carried most of it away. We landed in the cove and
shore past the cove and on to a flat shelf of rock, perfect
immediately set out to explore the island. Our first stop
for swimming. Around the corner, on the east shore, the
would be the cabin on the granite bluff above us. We
island was wild and overgrown. Here too was a bay full
181
Figure 62, Little Loon Island, from Peter's Point, pencil sketch, 1978
• Daylight in the Swamp • of boulders and a dense stand of birch and alder. Higher
northwest of Chapleau. Since the dam was built at Ear
up, where the island crowned, there was spruce and
Falls, Lac Seul has grown even larger and has become
jackpine. We clambered through the brush past the bay,
nearly as labyrinthine as Lake of the Woods.
then up a steep path to another granite bluff that commanded the northeastern corner of the island. We kept looking out over the lake as we went, watchful for other signs of human habitation. "I'm just bombed out!" confessed Irene. Tremblay pointed to the north. "That way's Nicholson, but you can't see it from here." The only sign of humanity was a short stretch of track to the northeast, the CPR transcontinental line, where it ran along the shore for a few hundred yards. But it was too late to discourage us. We both recognized our island home. "We'll take it," we said. The asking price was about $6,000. Irene, who had been saving her money for just such a purchase, was able to pay the lion's share of the price. I paid the rest. Ironically, Loon Island proved to be in the middle of a lake I had paddled many times. I must have looked at it more than once. Windermere is not a large lake, as Shield lakes go. It's only twelve miles long, and so broken up by islands, inlets, narrows and channels in every direction that there's no point in trying to describe its width. My new home in the bush reminded me of former homes. Lac Seul is larger than Lake Windermere. You'll find it readily on any road map, just west of Sioux Lookout. Windermere also shows up on the Ontario road map,
183
But, oh, God, where are the beautiful beaches and the glorious white pine stands of yesteryear?
This page intentionally left blank
appendix Radio Memoirs of Canon Sanderson
Fairford until I was twelve years of age. Then I left home
[broadcast on CJRL Kenora in February, 1959]
to go to an industrial school for Indian children near Winnipeg. It was not an institution of correction as the
I was born at the Fairford Indian Reserve in Manitoba
name seems to be understood nowadays. Perhaps a
on the 5th of April in the year 1877. Both my parents
better word to use would be "technical school" but at
were Crees. My father was born at Cumberland House on
that time the name "Industrial" was used because trades
the Saskatchewan River in what is now the Province of
or other occupations were taught, as well as classroom
Saskatchewan in the year 1826, but was brought by his
work. I took up the printing trade and worked at it for
parents to the Red River Settlement while yet an infant,
six years. At the end of that time, armed with a letter of
where they settled and where he grew up. My mother's
recommendation from the principal of the school, I
parents came from Moose Factory on James Bay in what
went to the city to look for a job in some printing
is now known as Northern Ontario. But as her father was
establishment.
employed by the Hudson's Bay Company and moved
Before I got to the first place I had in mind, I met an
about from time to time to different posts, she was born
old clergyman whom I'd known from the time I was a
at Lac Seul in northwestern Ontario. While yet a child the
boy. He stopped and asked me where I was going. When I
family moved to the Red River at what is now St.
told him my errand, he asked if I had ever thought of
Andrews, Manitoba. There they settled and that is where
going in for the ministry of the Church. Now the ministry
my mother grew up.
of the Church was one thing I had always had in my
I got my start in school at the Mission School at
mind, even as a boy, to be a missionary among my own
185
• Daylight in the Swamp • people. I could see even then the need for missionaries to
young men came in and sat in one of the back pews.
the Indians, but how it was to come about for me to take
There was nothing strange about that but what I did find
the necessary training, I had no idea. My father, though
strange was the way they kept their eyes fixed on me all
making a comfortable living as a small farmer on the
through the service. It pleased me, of course, to think that
reserve, had not the means to help me through college,
I was making some impression and holding the attention
and of course I had none of my own.
of at least two of the congregation. After the service I took
When, therefore, I met my old friend and he asked me
the opportunity of having a word or two with the
if I had ever thought of going into the ministry, I could
congregation as they left. My two attentive friends were
truthfully and not on the spur of the moment, tell him
the last to go, but they stopped and asked if I had the
what had long been in my thoughts. After a short talk he
time, would I go over and see them at their own home. It
said he was just on his way to a meeting but for me not to
was just a one-roomed house and they had made it very
do anything more just now about trying to find a job and
comfortable and home-like. But what struck me when I
to come and see him at his home the next day.
went in was the number of weapons that decorated the
I could hardly wait for the next day, wondering what
walls: shotguns and rifles and revolvers, and even a sword
might be in store. But it came at last and in good time I
or two. I didn't ask them, but I wondered why so many
was at my good friend's home and without much waste of
deadly weapons. Then they told me their story.
time he told me that he had arranged for me to enter St.
They were two English boys who, after much thought,
John's College, Winnipeg, and when could I come? Not
had decided to seek their fortune in a new country and
having many worldly goods to arrange for, I told him that
chose Canada in which to make the venture. They knew
I could come in two days' time. I entered St. John's
very little about the country but when they decided on
College in September, 1896. In 1902 I was ordained into
Canada, they read up on what they could find about it.
the ministry of the Anglican Church in St. John's
And among their reading was some wild and woolly stuff
Cathedral by Archbishop Machray.
that told of painted warriors and scalping Indians, always
I met with a rather amusing incident the first Sunday
on the warpath and brandishing tomahawks and
after my ordination. Some preparation had to be made
scalping knives. Truly a fearsome country for peace-
before I left for my first appointment and this made it
loving people to try and make a home. So they must
necessary for me to spend another week in town, and the
come prepared to sell their precious lives as dearly as
Sunday between I was sent to take service at a small
possible in case some marauding Indians made a raid on
church in the country. Just before the service began, two
their poor unsuspecting selves. What interested them was
186
• Daylight in the Swamp • the first Indian they saw in Canada was a clergyman of
home mission I had left as a boy of twelve nearly fifty-
their own Church and I don't think he gave them any
five years before. There I ended nearly fifty years in the
cause for alarm.
active ministry of the Church and went to live with my
My first appointment after ordination was the Lac
three sons who were actively employed with the gold
Seul Mission in Northwestern Ontario, and in the newly
mines at Red Lake, Ontario. But my work was not yet
formed diocese of Keewatin. It was a large mission and
done, for I carried on the services of the Church for
included several out-stations and that meant a large
nearly eight years because of the vacancy on the mission
territory which, in turn, involved much travelling. For
that then existed. I took my last regular service on Easter
besides the mission stations, the Indians at their trapping
day of this year. [1958]
grounds in winter were visited.
I did most of my travelling by snowshoe and dog team
After ten years at Lac Seul, I took charge of a newly
in winter. And by canoe and paddle and tumpline in
formed mission, namely the Peguis Mission in the
summer. But also by train and car and gas boat wherever
Diocese of Rupert's Land. After nearly ten years there, I
possible and later by plane when that mode of travel
returned to Lac Seul. But, I had only been there a year
came into general use. The latter was a quick and
when I was put in charge of the Indian missions in the
convenient way to travel where there were no railways or
southern part of the diocese of Keewatin. That took in a
motorcars. But even with the planes, there were still
very large territory and meant much travelling. In order
places I had to visit that called for the old way of travel,
to be nearer the centre of the work, I moved to Kenora
that is, by snowshoe and canoe.
and made my home there. Besides other advantages, it
In so much travelling over windswept lakes and
meant schooling for my children who, before that, had to
through forest trails, and through blinding blizzards in
be sent away from home for their education. I remained
winter, across rough and stormy lakes and running
at Kenora for nearly twenty years. By this time I was
foaming rapids in frail canoes in summer, it was
nearing forty years in the mission field and beginning to
inevitable that things did not always run as smoothly as
feel the strain of much hard travelling on account of
one had hoped. I don't think I ever took any foolhardy
advancing years.
chances and if I did take any risks, it was from necessity
I then moved back to Lac Seul and remained for four
and I always came safely through them.
years. The reason for the move was because there was not
I remember once travelling across a large lake, many
so much travelling to do. In 1944 I took the opportunity
miles across, when a blizzard struck when I was still ten
offered to take charge of the Fairford Mission, my old
miles out. There were times when I couldn't even see my
187
• Daylight in the Swamp • lead dog. Then night came on, no sign of stars or moon
covered with a thick blanket of snow. I never carried a
to guide me and I was all alone with only my dogs for
tent except in the summer as a protection from rain. For
company in that howling, shrieking blizzard and blinding
three days the storm raged with high winds that whipped
snow. Just before darkness fell I came to a crack in the ice
the lake into wild, high waves. At the end of the third day
that ran right across my way and stretched for miles on
we ate the last morsel of food we had, although we tried
either side. I spent a lot of valuable time looking for a safe
to make it last out as long as possible. But we still had tea.
place to cross but at last found a place where I thought I
We rolled in our bedding that night hoping the storm
might be able to make it. There was just a thin sheet of ice
would blow itself out but, when we awoke next morning,
over it and this was one time when I had to take a chance,
it was still blowing, though the snow had stopped. All we
Even the dogs seemed to sense the danger but I persuaded
had for breakfast that morning was tea. There was not a
them by cracking of the whip and voice to make a dash
sign of any living thing around, though we sought them
for it. We made it alright but I could see the water coming
in the bush. Not even a squirrel or a whiskey jack,
up behind me as we passed over the thin ice. I was on the
We couldn't stay there without food, and besides, when
toboggan, of course, which acted like a plank when one
the wind went down the lake might freeze and to wait for
ventures on dangerous ice. At long last I began to feel the
several days without food for the ice to get strong enough
snow getting deeper under me. That told me that we were
to travel on offered a poor prospect. So there was only one
getting near shore where the snow began to pile up and,
other thing to do and that was to get away from there as
sure enough, a little further and we hit land. By following
quickly as possible. Loading our stuff into the canoe and
the shore and keeping in the lee of the bush, we came to
with one more mug of hot tea, we launched out. How that
the Indian village that I was making for and all was well.
frail canoe bounced about on the rough waves. But it
On another occasion I had to make a trip of some
began to get heavy as the splashing water froze onto it as it
distance rather late in November and took a man with me
fell. The same thing happened to me as I was at the bow of
in case I met with some difficulty at that season of the
the canoe and got every splash. Travelling under these
year and we sure had lots. On our way back, the weather
conditions was hard work, of course. We were just
that up to that time had remained fine, turned bad. Thick
paddling. No outboard motor in those days. Empty
clouds began to gather and the wind shifted to the north,
stomachs made it a lot harder. Almost every two hours we
We were still twenty miles from home when we made
would land and boil the kettle. Though we made a round
camp that night. During the night the storm broke and
in the bush, there was nothing to be seen that would serve
when we woke up in the morning we found ourselves
for food. The storm had driven everything under cover.
188
• Daylight in the Swamp • Then we came to a deep bay running many miles
journey, long after midnight. As we paddled along we
inland. But only three miles across. We decided to risk the
could see that ice was beginning to form on the water,
three miles of rough water. We had been travelling on
But let it freeze! We were just about home. When I
rough water before but were near land all the time. But in
looked onto the lake later that morning, it was covered
this case it was crossing a deep bay with no land near and
with ice. We just got home in time,
if the water got too rough, there was no shelter handy to run to. It was getting late in the short autumn afternoon when we got across without mishap and, on rounding the point, there in a little sandy cove lay a birchbark canoe. And, nestling among the shelter of pine trees, a birchbark wigwam with a little curl of blue smoke coming out at the top. What a pleasant sight—and feeling—for even my hunger didn't seem so acute when I saw that. There was also a dog that gave warning to the inmates that strangers had arrived. When I pushed my way through an opening that had a piece of canvas hanging over it to serve for a door and stood inside, the good lady of the wigwam uttered an exclamation of surprise. And her first words were, "What happened?" for I was just about covered with ice. I ignored her question and said, "We're hungry." After a good meal of boiled whitefish and potatoes and bannock, we set out again, only this time we had several large whitefish that our kind friends supplied in case we had to stop on the way for a meal. For we still had ten miles to paddle before we reached home. Towards evening the wind began to calm down and the clouds cleared away and we knew the lake would freeze. So we kept on going till we came to the end of our
189
This page intentionally left blank
bibliography
Selwyn Hanington Dewdney: Selected Publications Books 1946 Wind Without Rain. Toronto: Copp Clark. [Novel.] Republished with an introduction, New Canadian Library Series, Toronto: McClelland and Stewart, 1974. 1960
The Map That Grew. Toronto: Oxford University Press. [Children's book.]
1967
(With Kenneth E. Kidd.) Indian Rock Paintings of the Great Lakes. Second edition. Published for the Quetico Foundation. Toronto: University of Toronto Press.
1975
The Sacred Scrolls of the Southern Ojibway. Published for the Glenbow-Alberta Institute, Calgary, Alberta. Toronto: University of Toronto Press.
1975
They Shared To Survive: The Native Peoples of Canada. Illustrated by Franklin Arbuckle. Toronto: The Macmillan Company of Canada, Limited.
1978
Christopher Breton. Toronto: McClelland and Stewart. [Novel.]
1980
The Hungry Time. Toronto: James Lorimer & Company, Publishers. [Children's book.]
Articles 1958 "The Quetico Pictographs." The Beaver (Summer), pp. 15-22 1959
"Stone Age Art in the Canadian Shield." Canadian Art XVI 3, pp. 164-167
1964
"Writings on Stone Along the Milk River." The Beaver (Winter), 22-29
1970
"Ecological Notes on the Ojibway Shaman-artist." artscanada 27 (4) pp. 17-28
Reports and chapters 1970 "Dating rock art in the Canadian Shield region." Royal Ontario Museum Art and Archaeology Occasional Paper 24. Toronto: University of Toronto Press. 1976
1977
"Birth of a Cree-Ojibway Style of Contemporary Art." Chapter 9 in One Century Later: Western Canadian Reserve Indians Since Treaty 7. Ian A.L. Getty and Donald B. Smith, eds., Vancouver: University of British Columbia Press. "Search for images of forgotten dreams." In Gilles Tasse and Selwyn Dewdney, eds., Releves et travaux recents sur Van rupestre amerindien, pp. 5-33. Collection Paleo-Quebec 8. Edite par le laboratoire d'archaeologie de 1'Universite du Quebec a Montreal, Montreal.
191
SELWYNDEWDNEY 1909 - 1979 FATHER OF ROCK ART RESEARCH IN CANADA Selwyn Dewdney pioneered the study of Amerindian rock paintings and carvings in Canada* He recorded 290 rock art sites between 1957 and 1975, In his quest, he paddled his canoe hundreds of miles into remote regions of the Canadian Shield. The Agawa pictographs were very special to him, In 1958 he wrote: AT AGAWA EVEN IN THE CALM THE WATER WAS RESTLESS BESIDE THE SLOPING LEDGE UNDER THE SHEER CLIFF. WE COMMANDEERED A LEAKY PUNT FROM THE FISH CAMP ON A NEARBY ISLAND AND PADDLED ASHORE WITH ONE OAR, A PIECE OF PLANK, AND A BAILING CAN. THEN, I STARED, A HUGE ANIMAL WITH CRESTED BACK AND HORNED HEAD. THERE WAS NO MISTAKING HIM, AND THERE, A MAN ON A HORSE - AND THERE FOUR SUNS •* AND THERE, CANOES... MY FOURTEEN MONTHS' SEARCH WAS OVER.
Dewdney came to know and respect the native peoples of Canada in his search for these "images of forgotten dreams". He turned his talents as artist* teacher, and author to share with other Canadians his profound love of this country's rich heritage. In May 1980, his sons Donner, Keewatin* Peter, and Christopher commended their father's ashes into his beloved Lake Superior, close to the Agawa pictograph site. IN TRIBUTE: BY THE FRIENDS, COLLEAGUES, AND FAMILY OF SELWYN DEWDNEY, IN CO-OPERATION WITH THE ONTARIO MINISTRY OF NATURAL RESOURCES,